Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n apostle_n bishop_n great_a 6,390 5 3.2230 3 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A61453 A plain and easie calculation of the name, mark, and number of the name of the beast ... humbly presented to the studious observers of Scripture-prophecies, God's works, and the times / by Nathaniel Stephens ... ; whereunto is prefixed, a commendatory epistle, written by Mr. Edm. Calamy. Stephens, Nathaniel, 1606?-1678.; Calamy, Edmund, 1600-1666. 1656 (1656) Wing S5450; ESTC R17480 246,007 328

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

beast_n be_v no_o other_o but_o his_o universal_a power_n and_o headship_n over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n then_o i_o will_v leave_v any_o man_n to_o consider_v whether_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v not_o here_o speak_v by_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_n he_o as_o god_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o have_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o 1000_o year_n put_v himself_o in_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o head_n and_o lawgiver_n to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o apostle_n go_v on_o vers._n 5._o remember_v you_o ●…ot_v when_o i_o be_v with_o you_o i_o tell_v you_o these_o thing_n we_o read_v in_o act_n 20._o when_o the_o 〈◊〉_d send_v to_o ephesus_n he_o call_v for_o the_o e●…ders_n of_o the_o church_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o grievous_a wolf_n shall_v come_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o spare_v the_o stock_n the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n he_o speak_v among_o the_o thessalonian_n when_o he_o do_v foreshow_v the_o decay_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n now_o for_o the_o time_n of_o his_o come_n and_o the_o knowledge_n they_o have_v o●…_n that_o time_n he_o have_v these_o word_n vers._n 6._o and_o now_o you_o know_v what_o with_o hol●…eth_v 〈◊〉_d he_o may_v be_v reveal_v in_o his_o time_n ●…y_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o thing_n that_o do_v withhold_v all_o interpreter_n for_o the_o most_o part_n 〈◊〉_d understand_v the_o great_a empire_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o as_o long_o as_o the_o m●…jesty_n of_o that_o empire_n do_v stand_v it_o will_v keep_v 〈◊〉_d the_o dominion_n of_o antichrist_n who_o shall_v ari●…e_v what_o knowledge_n the_o 〈◊〉_d thessalonian_n have_v of_o this_o be_v doubtful_a yet_o there_o i●…_n nothing_o more_o ●…ure_a then_o that_o the_o ancient_a writer_n 〈◊〉_d as_o live_v before_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n do_v believe_v that_o when_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d come_v than_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v reveal_v among_o many_o other_o when_o hierom_n hear_v of_o the_o take_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o r●…me_n he_o do_v make_v application_n of_o this_o scripture_n that_o then_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v at_o the_o door_n now_o whereas_o some_o interpreter_n think_v that_o we_o can_v show_v any_o precise_a time_n of_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n they_o divide_v themselves_o into_o sundry_a opinion_n and_o therefore_o some_o speak_v of_o his_o conception_n some_o of_o his_o birth_n some_o of_o his_o high_a advancement_n into_o the_o throne_n and_o some_o of_o the_o full_a perfection_n of_o his_o power_n other_o there_o be_v that_o take_v all_o these_o together_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v conceive_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n bear_v about_o the_o time_n of_o constantane_n set_v up_o in_o the_o throne_n under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n and_o raise_v to_o the_o high_a pitch_n when_o he_o do_v assume_v the_o power_n of_o both_o sword_n but_o all_o these_o be_v but_o conceit_n of_o man_n own_o comment_n for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n must_v not_o be_v as_o every_o one_o will_v feign_v it_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n but_o as_o it_o be_v positive_o and_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n now_o if_o we_o go_v to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o context_n the_o great_a empire_n of_o the_o roman_a the_o impediment_n that_o hinder_v must_v be_v take_v away_o and_o then_o after_o that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n must_v be_v reveal_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o definite_a and_o determinate_a time_n there_o be_v then_o a_o precise_a definite_a and_o determinate_a time_n for_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o this_o must_v be_v after_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o old_a empire_n n●…w_o according_a to_o these_o ground_n there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o time_n intend_v but_o when_o he_o be_v install_v ecumenical_a bishop_n under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n it_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o story_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o empire_n fall_v and_o the_o king_n arise_v in_o the_o five_o century_n and_o after_o that_o in_o the_o year_n 606_o from_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 666_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdome_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v declare_v universal_a head_n over_o all_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n in_o this_o year_n he_o be_v reveal_v and_o declare_v to_o the_o world_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v describe_v he_o for_o in_o this_o year_n he_o do_v begin_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o church_n or_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o in_o cathedrá_fw-fr as_o ecumenical_a and_o universal_a bishop_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o we_o have_v the_o particular_a time_n when_o antichrist_n be_v reveal_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o definite_a time_n this_o we_o take_v to_o be_v the_o natural_a sense_n of_o the_o text_n for_o if_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v suppose_v first_o that_o the_o be_v of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n lie_v essential_o in_o his_o headship_n over_o the_o church_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n second_o that_o he_o do_v appear_v in_o his_o proper_a time_n after_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o old_a empire_n what_o other_o thing_n can_v here_o be_v signify_v or_o decipher_v but_o that_o which_o we_o speak_v of_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o number_n 666_o in_o the_o revelation_n do_v point_n out_o the_o time_n of_o the_o rise_n of_o this_o spiritual_a monarchy_n for_o as_o we_o have_v former_o show_v the_o year_n 606_o according_a to_o the_o calculation_n of_o the_o time_n in_o daniel_n be_v the_o number_n 666_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v how_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o scripture_n do_v full_o answer_v our_o interpretation_n concern_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n now_o let_v we_o go_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o they_o follow_v vers._n 7_o 8._o for_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v already_o work_v only_o he_o who_o now_o let_v will_v let_v till_o he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o then_o shall_v that_o wicked_a one_o be_v reveal_v here_o interpreter_n do_v inquire_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n some_o do_v think_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v refer_v to_o those_o heresy_n in_o the_o first_o time_n that_o be_v previous_a to_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n but_o how_o can_v those_o gross_a heresy_n be_v so_o call_v the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v encroach_v upon_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o godly_a man_n under_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o great_a holiness_n second_o suppose_v that_o in_o those_o first_o time_n there_o be_v some_o beginning_n of_o freewill_n justification_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o man_n yet_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o our_o purpose_n for_o we_o be_v here_o special_o to_o look_v after_o such_o a_o work_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n as_o make_v way_n for_o the_o papacy_n or_o the_o papal_a government_n or_o the_o universal_a headship_n of_o antichrist_n that_o he_o shall_v sit_v as_o lord_n or_o chief_a ruler_n in_o and_o over_o the_o church_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n the_o question_n be_v what_o previous_a work_n be_v there_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o so_o downward_o towards_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o universal_a headship_n for_o this_o be_v to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n and_o this_o do_v answer_v the_o matter_n in_o hand_n let_v we_o therefore_o consult_v with_o other_o scripture_n s._n john_n say_v you_o have_v hear_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v come_v even_o so_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n be_v already_o in_o the_o world_n 1_o joh._n 4._o 3._o what_o do_v he_o mean_v by_o this_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n be_v already_o in_o the_o world_n he_o do_v explain_v himself_o in_o his_o three_o epistle_n and_o the_o 9_o verse_n i_o will_v have_v write_v unto_o the_o church_n but_o diotrephes_n who_o love_v to_o have_v the_o pre-eminence_n suffer_v we_o not_o it_o appear_v from_o hence_o then_o that_o in_o those_o first_o time_n man_n do_v affect_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o primacy_n or_o headship_n in_o and_o over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n here_o then_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v begin_v to_o work_v in_o those_o first_o time_n but_o lest_o any_o man_n may_v allege_v that_o these_o encroachment_n be_v too_o gross_a and_o that_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n must_v be_v carry_v on_o with_o great_a show_n
nation_n yet_o if_o we_o serious_o consider_v the_o time_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o light_n begin_v to_o break_v out_o and_o the_o day_n begin_v to_o dawn_n at_o the_o take_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o year_n 1453._o for_o the_o greek_a empire_n be_v destroy_v and_o that_o eye_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v put_v out_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n by_o this_o mean_n to_o cast_v many_o learned_a grecian_n into_o this_o western_a world_n this_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o revive_n of_o the_o language_n and_o the_o revive_n of_o the_o language_n bring_v in_o the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o ancient_a author_n and_o thing_n begin_v to_o be_v cast_v into_o another_o mould_n by_o this_o mean_v the_o more_o learned_a sort_n be_v bring_v off_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o the_o more_o zealous_a one_o from_o vision_n dream_n and_o revelation_n and_o so_o the_o world_n be_v prepare_v to_o receive_v another_o kind_n of_o light_n not_o to_o mention_v the_o trouble_n which_o reuchlin_n pagnin_n and_o arias_n montanus_n do_v meet_v withal_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o epistle_n of_o erasmus_n how_o much_o the_o monk_n and_o friar_n be_v enrage_v at_o he_o he_o tell_v we_o how_o in_o england_n france_n spain_n italy_n and_o everywhere_o in_o a_o manner_n they_o do_v both_o public_o and_o private_o inveigh_v against_o he_o and_o it_o go_v for_o a_o receive_a maxim_n among_o many_o that_o erasmus_n do_v more_o hurt_v than_o luther_n how_o can_v that_o be_v he_o revive_v the_o tongue_n he_o be_v a_o instrument_n to_o bring_v man_n to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o ancient_a author_n and_o by_o those_o amoeniores_fw-la literae_fw-la which_o he_o so_o often_o speak_v of_o he_o do_v bring_v the_o world_n from_o monkish_a darkness_n and_o foolish_a revelation_n campanella_n therefore_o call_v the_o war_n betwixt_o the_o protestant_n and_o the_o papist_n grammaticale_n bellum_n a_o grammarian_n war_n because_o by_o the_o study_n of_o the_o language_n by_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v introduce_v and_o it_o be_v the_o sentence_n of_o melancthon_n non_fw-la aliam_fw-la ad_fw-la veterem_fw-la barbariem_fw-la reducendam_fw-la magis_fw-la compendiariam_fw-la esse_fw-la viam_fw-la quam_fw-la si_fw-la studia_fw-la linguarum_fw-la interirent_fw-la there_o be_v no_o more_o compendious_a way_n to_o reduce_v the_o ancient_a barbarism_n then_o if_o the_o study_n of_o language_n shall_v peresh_v orat._n tom_n 4._o pag._n 465._o as_o light_v then_o as_o man_n make_v of_o humane_a learning_n in_o these_o time_n it_o be_v one_o chief_a mean_a under_o god_n to_o bring_v the_o world_n out_o of_o antichristian_a darkness_n and_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o so_o it_o man_n that_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v total_o abolish_v it_o will_v occasion_v the_o return_n of_o that_o darkness_n once_o again_o now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o consider_v the_o story_n and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o immersion_n how_o the_o church_n come_v first_o under_o this_o darkness_n it_o be_v clear_a from_o the_o process_n of_o the_o aforementioned_a discourse_n that_o about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n the_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v public_o proclaim_v the_o scripture_n begin_v to_o be_v slight_v and_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n immoderate_o extol_v now_o here_o be_v a_o great_a demand_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o the_o church_n can_v apostatise_v and_o degenerate_v so_o far_o in_o one_o or_o two_o century_n see_v in_o the_o age_n of_o the_o christian_a caesar_n when_o chrysostome_n hierom_n augustine_n and_o other_o live_v there_o be_v so_o much_o light_v the_o answer_n be_v clear_a the_o goth_n hun_n and_o vandal_n and_o other_o barbarous_a nation_n come_v out_o of_o the_o north_n overturn_v church_n burn_a library_n overthrow_v school_n of_o learning_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o world_n be_v organise_v and_o fashion_v to_o receive_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n and_o all_o that_o whole_a body_n of_o false_a doctrine_n that_o shall_v be_v set_v up_o in_o the_o conscience_n of_o ignorant_a people_n by_o vision_n dream_n and_o revelation_n from_o all_o which_o i_o do_v conclude_v if_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o total_a abrogation_n of_o book-learning_n it_o will_v be_v a_o compendious_a way_n &_o mean_n to_o bring_v the_o church_n into_o its_o former_a darkness_n for_o as_o experience_n show_v that_o the_o take_v away_o of_o that_o learning_n be_v one_o chief_a me●…n_n to_o introduce_v antichristian_a darkness_n so_o the_o restore_n and_o renew_v of_o it_o again_o be_v one_o principal_a mean_n of_o the_o recovery_n of_o the_o former_a light_n three_o they_o do_v symbolize_v and_o come_v in_o the_o near_a similitude_n to_o the_o true_a formality_n of_o antichristianism_n who_o do_v build_v their_o corscience_n upon_o man_n and_o do_v make_v man_n the_o lord_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o this_o sense_n we_o be_v to_o take_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n when_o he_o say_v mat._n 23._o 9_o call_v no_o man_n your_o father_n upon_o the_o earth_n for_o one_o be_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n neither_o be_v you_o call_v master_n for_o one_o be_v your_o master_n even_o christ._n some_o be_v so_o void_a of_o understanding_n as_o to_o take_v these_o word_n according_a to_o the_o letter_n as_o though_o the_o practice_n of_o christianity_n shall_v extinguish_v civil_a relation_n and_o distinction_n betwixt_o man_n and_o man_n but_o these_o be_v idle_a conceit_n we_o be_v to_o look_v to_o the_o scope_n of_o our_o saviour_n meaning_n the_o jew_n in_o his_o time_n be_v divide_v into_o divers_a faction_n into_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o pharisee_n sadducee_n herodian_o gaulonite_n and_o the_o like_a now_o it_o be_v the_o ambition_n of_o those_o time_n for_o every_o man_n to_o have_v his_o rabbi_n and_o each_o rabbi_n to_o have_v his_o scholar_n depend_v upon_o he_o as_o the_o lord_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o this_o sense_n our_o saviour_n speak_v that_o they_o shall_v call_v no_o man_n rabbi_n rabbi_n and_o give_v this_o reason_n one_o be_v your_o master_n even_o christ_n and_o all_o you_o be_v brethren_n in_o these_o word_n he_o do_v especial_o point_v at_o the_o formality_n of_o antichristianism_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n for_o though_o there_o be_v much_o ado_n make_v betwixt_o the_o critic_n in_o the_o greek_a hebrew_n and_o syriack_n tongue_n about_o the_o true_a origination_n of_o the_o word_n papa_n yet_o i_o find_v that_o all_o do_v agree_v in_o the_o signification_n that_o it_o be_v as_o much_o in_o sense_n as_o spiritual_a father_n now_o then_o if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n we_o shall_v find_v it_o apparent_a that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n do_v depend_v upon_o their_o teacher_n as_o their_o spiritual_a father_n and_o all_o the_o spiritual_a father_n of_o the_o low_a degree_n do_v depend_v upon_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o father_n of_o all_o and_o herein_o that_o hierarchy_n do_v direct_o oppose_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v describe_v eph._n 4._o ver_fw-la 4._o 5_o 6._o there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n even_o as_o you_o be_v call_v into_o one_o hope_n of_o your_o call_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n further_o speak_v how_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v begin_v to_o work_v in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n every_o one_o of_o you_o say_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o i_o of_o apollo_n and_o i_o of_o cephas_n and_o i_o of_o christ_n be_v christ_n divide_v be_v paul_n crucify_v for_o you_o or_o be_v you_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 1._o 12_o 13._o it_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o that_o church_n be_v break_v by_o many_o division_n several_a believer_n have_v their_o several_a rabbi_n on_o who_o they_o do_v depend_v and_o though_o paul_n and_o cephas_n will_v not_o take_v so_o much_o upon_o they_o to_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o people_n faith_n and_o the_o head_n of_o party_n yet_o the_o false_a apostle_n do_v wonderful_o affect_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o title_n and_o too_o many_o carnal_a christian_n in_o those_o day_n be_v too_o forward_o to_o pin_v their_o faith_n upon_o other_o man_n sleeve_n and_o to_o come_v in_o the_o near_a formasity_n to_o the_o antichristian_a practice_n in_o these_o last_o time_n the_o world_n be_v too_o apt_a to_o fall_v into_o division_n and_o to_o say_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n i_o be_o of_o apollo_n and_o i_o be_o of_o cephas_n and_o in_o this_o man_n must_v needs_o symbolize_v with_o they_o who_o make_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o lord_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o do_v profess_v themselves_o
to_o be_v member_n of_o his_o church_n the_o building_n upon_o man_n then_o be_v that_o which_o do_v bring_v any_o people_n in_o the_o near_a resemblance_n to_o antichristianisme_n and_o the_o more_o they_o do_v this_o the_o more_o or_o less_o be_v they_o antichristian_a and_o this_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v one_o chief_a reason_n in_o scripture_n why_o the_o fall_v of_o the_o most_o eminent_a saint_n be_v leave_v upon_o record_n because_o other_o shall_v not_o dote_v too_o much_o upon_o they_o moses_n do_v anger_v the_o lord_n at_o the_o water_n of_o meribah_n and_o massah_n he_o die_v before_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n and_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v bury_v he_o in_o obscurity_n no_o man_n know_v of_o his_o sepulchre_n because_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n shall_v not_o go_v awhoring_a after_o it_o deut._n 34._o 6._o and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n among_o all_o the_o apostle_n the_o fault_n of_o none_o be_v leave_v so_o upon_o public_a record_n as_o those_o of_o peter_n and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o all_o this_o doubtless_o the_o lord_n do_v foresee_v what_o idolatry_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v commit_v in_o own_v his_o universal_a headship_n over_o the_o church_n as_o that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v give_v into_o his_o hand_n alone_o for_o these_o cause_n i_o believe_v the_o great_a fall_n of_o peter_n be_v leave_v upon_o record_n that_o the_o papist_n shall_v not_o say_v i_o be_o of_o peter_n i_o be_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n by_o succession_n from_o peter_n cyprian_a and_o some_o of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n fall_v into_o another_o extreme_a they_o think_v if_o a_o man_n have_v deny_v the_o truth_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n he_o shall_v never_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o ministry_n again_o but_o shall_v stand_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n as_o one_o of_o they_o only_o i_o can_v but_o in_o the_o general_n approve_v the_o strictness_n of_o the_o discipline_n especial_o against_o the_o fault_n and_o corruption_n of_o minister_n who_o shall_v be_v light_n and_o example_n to_o other_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o strict_o deal_v with_o all_o never_o to_o be_v receive_v no_o not_o upon_o term_n of_o the_o great_a repentance_n humiliation_n and_o godly_a sorrow_n i_o may_v say_v in_o this_o case_n that_o cyprian_a and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o african_a father_n be_v too_o canonical_a and_o it_o be_v well_o for_o s._n peter_n that_o he_o be_v no_o minister_n in_o africa_n when_o he_o deny_v his_o master_n in_o the_o high-priest_n hall_n sure_o by_o the_o rigour_n of_o such_o principle_n they_o will_v never_o have_v receive_v he_o into_o office_n again_o but_o the_o lord_n christ_n have_v a_o better_a end_n in_o the_o permission_n of_o his_o fall_n simon_n say_v he_o satan_n have_v desire_v to_o winnow_v thou_o as_o wheat_n but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v luke_n 22._o 31._o here_o then_o the_o reason_n be_v clear_o show_v why_o satan_n do_v prevail_v so_o against_o peter_n why_o he_o be_v uphold_v mere_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n the_o reason_n be_v this_o when_o thou_o be_v convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n god_n in_o great_a wisdom_n do_v suffer_v the_o most_o eminent_a minister_n to_o fall_v great_o to_o pluck_v down_o their_o pride_n that_o they_o may_v be_v more_o humble_a and_o that_o their_o bowel_n of_o affection_n and_o tenderness_n may_v be_v great_a towards_o the_o lose_a son_n of_o man_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v preach_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n more_o tender_o and_o more_o feel_o to_o the_o win_n and_o save_v of_o miserable_a soul_n these_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o peter_n and_o one_o special_a reason_n be_v also_o here_o to_o be_v remember_v god_n do_v permit_v he_o to_o fall_v so_o foul_o to_o prevent_v that_o sin_n of_o antichristianity_n as_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v which_o shall_v be_v so_o general_a in_o the_o last_o time_n now_o the_o sin_n of_o antichristianity_n be_v to_o make_v man_n the_o lord_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o build_v upon_o peter_n or_o the_o pope_n the_o pretend_a successor_n of_o peter_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n four_o they_o do_v symbolize_v with_o the_o great_a antichrist_n who_o use_v a_o lawful_a authority_n antichrist-like_a to_o serve_v their_o own_o pride_n ambition_n and_o external_a glory_n the_o apostle_n say_v i_o will_v have_v write_v unto_o the_o church_n but_o diotrephes_n who_o love_v to_o have_v the_o pre-eminence_n suffer_v we_o not_o 3_o joh._n ver_fw-la 9_o here_o then_o see_v he_o do_v love_n to_o have_v the_o pre-eminence_n we_o may_v probable_o conceive_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o lawful_a government_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v a_o affectation_n of_o precedency_n even_o in_o those_o day_n and_o in_o what_o time_n may_v not_o the_o like_a spirit_n of_o pride_n be_v in_o some_o man_n when_o they_o be_v put_v into_o place_n of_o rule_n we_o read_v also_o in_o the_o direction_n of_o paul_n concern_v the_o choice_n of_o a_o bishop_n that_o he_o must_v not_o be_v a_o novice_n lest_o be_v swell_v up_o with_o pride_n he_o fall_v into_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o devil_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 6._o it_o be_v clear_a from_o these_o word_n as_o also_o from_o the_o whole_a epistle_n that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o government_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o whosoever_o s._n paul_n bishop_n be_v he_o must_v have_v the_o principal_a stroke_n in_o the_o government_n for_o these_o word_n be_v immediate_o add_v if_o a_o man_n know_v not_o how_o to_o rule_v his_o own_o house_n how_o shall_v he_o take_v care_n for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v christ_n house_n and_o the_o bishop_n elder_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n have_v their_o office_n by_o delegation_n from_o he_o and_o not_o from_o any_o other_o authority_n now_o such_o a_o lawful_a power_n as_o this_o be_v man_n may_v sinful_o abuse_v and_o pervert_v to_o the_o set_n up_o of_o their_o own_o greatness_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n do_v give_v this_o caveat_n not_o a_o novice_n lest_o be_v swell_v up_o with_o pride_n he_o fall_v into_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o devil_n by_o a_o novice_n he_o do_v not_o intend_v a_o man_n young_a in_o year_n for_o timothy_n himself_o be_v but_o young_a but_o he_o mean_v a_o beginner_n in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n a_o novice_n in_o manner_n such_o a_o one_o he_o will_v not_o have_v set_v over_o the_o house_n of_o god_n lest_o be_v swell_v up_o with_o pride_n he_o fall_v into_o the_o same_o sin_n and_o the_o same_o condemnation_n as_o the_o devil_n do_v be_v sometime_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n from_o this_o instance_n than_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o a_o lawful_a power_n may_v be_v use_v in_o a_o antichristian_a manner_n such_o beginning_n of_o pride_n the_o apostle_n probable_o may_v see_v in_o those_o day_n and_o these_o may_v occasion_v he_o to_o say_v the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v already_o work_v now_o whereas_o some_o do_v impute_v it_o to_o this_o or_o that_o government_n that_o it_o will_v be_v as_o tyrannical_a and_o antichristian_a as_o any_o that_o go_v before_o let_v they_o not_o deceive_v themselves_o the_o government_n may_v be_v christ_n yet_o if_o any_o do_v use_v it_o to_o serve_v their_o own_o pride_n tyranny_n or_o lordliness_n the_o fault_n be_v their_o own_o it_o lie_v in_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o person_n but_o not_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o office_n the_o superiority_n of_o parent_n over_o their_o child_n of_o husband_n over_o their_o wife_n of_o magistrate_n over_o the_o people_n be_v all_o by_o divine_a institution_n yet_o the_o person_n may_v so_o demean_v themselves_o that_o they_o may_v tyrannize_v and_o if_o we_o may_v so_o speak_v it_o may_v antichristianize_v that_o be_v a_o remarkable_a passage_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v concern_v steward_n in_o a_o lawful_a power_n if_o that_o evil_a servant_n shall_v say_v my_o lord_n defer_v his_o come_n and_o shall_v begin_v to_o smite_v his_o fellow-servant_n and_o shall_v eat_v and_o drink_v with_o the_o drunken_a the_o lord_n of_o that_o servant_n will_v come_v in_o a_o day_n when_o he_o look_v not_o for_o he_o and_o will_v cut_v he_o in_o sunder_o and_o appoint_v he_o his_o portion_n with_o hypocrite_n mat._n 24._o 48_o 49._o by_o a_o servant_n or_o steward_n we_o may_v understand_v magistrate_n minister_n or_o any_o other_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v entrust_v with_o a_o lawful_a power_n in_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n now_o if_o they_o use_v this_o power_n illegal_o and_o tyrannical_o if_o minister_n cast_v those_o out_o of_o the_o church_n who_o shall_v be_v keep_v in_o
of_o the_o old_a empire_n behind_o and_o so_o go_v forward_o apply_v the_o rise_n of_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n to_o what_o time_n we_o please_v no_o there_o be_v some_o particular_a instant_n of_o time_n when_o the_o beast_n rise_v up_o out_o of_o the_o earth_n when_o his_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n begin_v and_o thi●…_n must_v needs_o be_v at_o the_o decree_n under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n when_o it_o be_v determine_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v head_n over_o all_o church_n so_o then_o if_o we_o lie_v these_o three_o principle_n together_o first_o that_o the_o beast_n have_v a_o determinate_a beginning_n of_o his_o kingdom_n second_o that_o this_o determinate_a beginning_n be_v after_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n three_o that_o it_o be_v after_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n in_o such_o time_n when_o the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n begin_v first_o public_o and_o solemn_o to_o be_v establish_v if_o we_o put_v all_o these_o three_o together_o we_o shall_v inevitable_o pi●…ch_v upon_o that_o time_n when_o the_o decree_n go_v forth_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o head_n over_o all_o church_n for_o if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o story_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o present_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v to_o have_v equal_a privilege_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n nay_o further_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v in_o a_o fair_a possibility_n for_o the_o universal_a headship_n than_o be_v he_o of_o rome_n only_o then_o in_o the_o time_n under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n the_o decree_n be_v enact_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n and_o from_o that_o time_n downward_o this_o have_v be_v a_o privilege_n perpetual_o annex_v to_o that_o chair_n and_o so_o then_o we_o have_v the_o true_a beginning_n of_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o it_o be_v right_o and_o apocalyptical_o apply_v ●…o_o the_o time_n by_o the_o position_n of_o the_o three_o principle_n aforenamed_a but_o here_o bellarmine_n and_o baronius_n deny_v that_o the_o universal_a headship_n begin_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n for_o say_v bellarmine_n phocas_n do_v not_o ordain_v this_o by_o way_n of_o a_o new_a institution_n but_o only_o by_o way_n of_o declaration_n of_o a_o thing_n ever_o before_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o church_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o mornay_n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o papacy_n tell_v we_o that_o all_o historian_n down_o from_o that_o time_n as_o paulus_n diaconus_fw-la freculphus_n rhegino_n anastasius_n sabelli●…us_n blondus_fw-la pomponius_n laetus_n and_o other_o agree_v in_o this_o begin_n progress_n 22._o pag._n 118._o and_o for_o baronius_n he_o say_v an._n 606._o therefore_o what_o do_v phocas_n bestow_v upon_o the_o roman_a church_n nothing_o true_o only_o he_o do_v declare_v by_o his_o sentence_n that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o ecumenical_a bishop_n be_v unlawful_o usurp_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n when_o it_o be_v due_a romanae_fw-la tantum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la only_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o can_v but_o admire_v at_o the_o boldness_n of_o this_o great_a annalist_n that_o he_o shall_v go_v so_o palpable_o against_o the_o story_n of_o the_o church_n and_o against_o some_o chief_a record_n of_o their_o own_o for_o if_o we_o look_v a_o little_a before_o in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a we_o shall_v find_v that_o there_o be_v a_o sharp_a contest_v betwixt_o he_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n about_o the_o primacy_n for_o john_n the_o four_o surname_v the_o easter_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n do_v begin_v to_o assume_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 580_o 26_o year_n before_o the_o matter_n be_v determine_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v the_o more_o embolden_v to_o do_v this_o because_o he_o see_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n establish_v at_o constantinople_n and_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n besiege_v by_o the_o lombard_n and_o consequent_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n bring_v to_o a_o low_a ebb_n now_o these_o attempt_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n they_o of_o rome_n do_v most_o strong_o oppose_v but_o none_o more_o than_o gregory_n the_o great_a as_o may_v appear_v by_o sundry_a passage_n in_o his_o epistle_n at_o this_o very_a day_n in_o they_o we_o find_v everywhere_o that_o he_o do_v strong_o dispute_v against_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o do_v say_v in_o effect_n that_o it_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n he_o do_v again_o and_o again_o inculcate_v that_o the_o title_n be_v new_a profane_a contrary_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o use_v of_o the_o church_n and_o whereas_o bellarmine_n and_o baronius_n have_v this_o creephole_n that_o he_o do_v only_o inveigh_v against_o the_o encroachment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n he_o do_v again_o and_o again_o repeat_v that_o none_o of_o his_o predecessor_n do_v ever_o use_v such_o a_o profane_a title_n nullus_fw-la decessorum_fw-la meorum_fw-la hoc_fw-la tam_fw-la profano_fw-la vocabulo_fw-la uti_fw-la consuevit_fw-la lib._n 4._o epist._n 80._o but_o that_o which_o be_v most_o to_o our_o purpo●…e_n he_o do_v everywhere_o place_v the_o formality_n of_o antichristianism_n in_o the_o universal_a headship_n and_o they_o that_o affect_v so_o to_o be_v call_v he_o do_v express_o term_v they_o the_o praecursor_n and_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n to_o let_v pass_v all_o other_o we_o will_v recite_v those_o word_n of_o he_o as_o they_o be_v in_o his_o six_o book_n and_o thirty_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n mauritius_n consider_v say_v he_o that_o when_o antichrist_n shall_v call_v himself_o god_n the_o matter_n itself_o be_v but_o small_a and_o frivolous_a yet_o most_o pernicious_a if_o you_o look_v to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o word_n it_o consist_v only_o of_o two_o syllable_n but_o if_o you_o regard_v the_o weight_n of_o iniquity_n the_o matter_n be_v very_o great_a for_o i_o may_v bold_o say_v that_o whosoever_o call_v himself_o or_o desire_v to_o be_v call_v by_o other_o the_o universal_a priest_n or_o bishop_n be_v in_o his_o elation_n of_o mind_n the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n in_o elatione_fw-la suâ_fw-la antichristum_n praecurrit_fw-la because_o in_o like_a pride_n he_o prefer_v himself_o before_o other_o and_o in_o his_o four_o book_n epist._n 34._o he_o write_v to_o constantia_n the_o empress_n be_v it_o far_o say_v he_o that_o your_o time_n shall_v thus_o be_v defile_v with_o the_o exaltation_n of_o one_o man_n and_o then_o add_v in_o hâc_fw-la ejus_fw-la superbiâ_fw-la quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la nisi_fw-la propanqua_fw-la ja●…_n antichristi_fw-la esse_fw-la tempora_fw-la designatur_fw-la by_o this_o arrogancy_n what_o else_o be_v portend_v but_o that_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n be_v now_o at_o hand_n and_o more_o full_o to_o john_n himself_o he_o use_v these_o word_n lib._n 4._o epist._n 38._o tu_fw-la quid_fw-la christo_fw-la universalis_fw-la scilicet_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la capiti_fw-la in_fw-la extremi_fw-la judicii_fw-la dicturus_fw-la es_fw-la examine_v qui_fw-la cuncta_fw-la ejus_fw-la membra_fw-la tibimet_fw-la conaris_fw-la universalis_fw-la appellatione_fw-la supponere_fw-la what_o will_v thou_o answer_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n see_v that_o by_o this_o name_n universal_a thou_o seek_v to_o enthral_v the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n to_o thyself_o and_o that_o which_o make_v more_o to_o our_o purpose_n he_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o time_n concern_v the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n begin_v to_o be_v fulfil_v and_o that_o there_o be_v ●…ow_o a_o performance_n of_o the_o prophecy_n omnia_fw-la enim_fw-la quae_fw-la praedicta_fw-la sunt_fw-la fiunt_fw-la rex_fw-la superbiae_fw-la prope_fw-la est_fw-la &_o quod_fw-la dici_fw-la nefas_fw-la est_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la est_fw-la praeparatus_fw-la exercitus_fw-la all_o prophecy_n begin_v now_o to_o be_v fulfil_v and_o that_o which_o i_o dread_v to_o speak_v the_o king_n of_o pride_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o a_o army_n of_o priest_n do_v attend_v he_o now_o for_o these_o and_o suchlike_a passage_n between_o gregory_n and_o john_n of_o constantinople_n i_o can_v think_v otherwise_o of_o they_o but_o that_o they_o do_v happen_v by_o the_o singular_a providence_n of_o god_n to_o excite_v the_o world_n to_o look_v after_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n for_o as_o when_o our_o lord_n christ_n be_v bear_v at_o bethlehem_n there_o be_v a_o hurly-burly_n in_o judaea_n the_o star_n appear_v the_o wise_a man_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o whole_a city_n be_v trouble_v what_o be_v the_o end_n of_o god_n in_o all_o this_o but_o to_o stir_v they_o
when_o herod_n be_v king_n of_o the_o jew_n sol._n the_o answer_n be_v clear_a that_o though_o herod_n be_v king_n of_o the_o jew_n yet_o cyreneus_n be_v the_o principal_a agent_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o the_o tax_n and_o judea_n be_v but_o a_o member_n annex_v to_o the_o province_n of_o syria_n maldonate_fw-it upon_o the_o place_n to_o my_o apprehension_n speak_v satisfactory_o for_o say_v he_o cyreneus_n be_v not_o the_o governor_n of_o judea_n but_o of_o syria_n but_o because_o judea_n do_v then_o belong_v to_o the_o province_n of_o syria_n as_o all_o author_n do_v deliver_v it_o be_v his_o office_n to_o tax_v not_o only_a syria_n but_o judea_n also_o and_o in_o very_a deed_n much_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o roman_a story_n that_o judea_n be_v a_o member_n annex_v and_o jos●…phus_n call_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o apendix_n or_o the_o additament_n of_o syria_n if_o we_o go_v to_o the_o original_a we_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o story_n that_o when_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n be_v destroy_v syria_n and_o judea_n both_o together_o come_v under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o pompe●…_n the_o great_a and_o here_o we_o set_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n but_o because_o spanhemius_fw-la do_v seem_v to_o go_v another_o way_n and_o do_v stand_v upon_o it_o that_o judea_n be_v not_o a_o member_n annex_v to_o syria_n till_o the_o time_n of_o archelaus_n when_o judea_n be_v make_v a_o province_n let_v he_o now_o give_v his_o answer_n why_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n be_v record_v by_o the_o evangelist_n to_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ecumenical_a tax_n of_o the_o roman_a world_n his_o answer_n be_v this_o ut_fw-la non_fw-la tantum_fw-la res_fw-la tam_fw-la illustris_fw-la charactere_fw-la temporis_fw-la illustri_fw-la consignaretur_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o tali_fw-la qui_fw-la responderet_fw-la vaticiniis_fw-la propheticis_fw-la not_o only_o that_o so_o famous_a a_o matter_n shall_v be_v decipher_v by_o so_o famous_a a_o character_n of_o time_n but_o by_o such_o a_o famous_a character_n of_o time_n which_o shall_v answer_v the_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o then_o in_o particular_a he_o cit_v those_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n in_o the_o day_n of_o these_o kingdom_n shall_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n raise_v up_o a_o kingdom_n that_o never_o shall_v be_v destroy_v chap._n 2._o vers_fw-la 44._o and_o then_o he_o conclude_v upon_o the_o premise_n in_o these_o word_n descriptio_fw-la enim_fw-la judaeorum_n sub_fw-la augusto_fw-la erat_fw-la publica_fw-la servitutis_fw-la professio_fw-la &_o tessera_fw-la obsequii_fw-la quod_fw-la debebatur_fw-la principi_fw-la extero_fw-la adeóque_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d advenisse_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d illud_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d quo_fw-la messiah_n nasci_fw-la debuit_fw-la &_o lapis_fw-la sine_fw-la manibus_fw-la è_fw-la monte_fw-fr excindi_fw-la the_o tax_n of_o the_o jew_n under_o augustus_n be_v a_o public_a profession_n of_o their_o servitude_n and_o a_o badge_n of_o that_o homage_n which_o be_v due_a to_o a_o foreign_a prince_n and_o therefore_o a_o clear_a demon●…ation_n that_o that_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v in_o which_o the_o messiah_n shall_v be_v bear_v and_o in_o which_o the_o stone_n shall_v be_v cut_v out_o of_o the_o mountain_n without_o hand_n from_o these_o word_n of_o he_o we_o do_v conclude_v that_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o evangelist_n the_o roman_a be_v the_o four_o and_o last_o metal-kingdom_n for_o when_o the_o lord_n christ_n be_v bear_v the_o jew_n do_v yield_v their_o homage_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_n as_o to_o those_o that_o be_v set_v over_o they_o but_o if_o we_o do_v inquire_v after_o the_o time_n when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v homager_n it_o be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o pompey_n the_o great_a therefore_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o evangelist_n we_o must_v there_o set_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n argument_n v._n that_o which_o do_v necessary_o spring_v from_o the●…r_a principle_n who_o do_v most_o authentical_o expound_v the_o monarchy_n that_o be_v the_o true_a beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n but_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n when_o the_o church_n come_v first_o within_o the_o verge_n of_o their_o dominion_n be_v such_o ergo._fw-la the_o major_n be_v plain_a for_o we_o can_v reject_v that_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n which_o do_v necessary_o spring_v from_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o most_o authentic_a expositor_n we_o do_v in_o substance_n take_v that_o for_o truth_n which_o be_v employ_v as_o that_o which_o be_v plain_o express_v but_o for_o the_o minor_a that_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a monarchy_n be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-stare_a and_o that_o this_o do_v spring_n from_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o most_o authentic_a expositor_n this_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o enumeration_n of_o singulars_n first_o the_o most_o approve_a interpreter_n do_v hold_v that_o all_o the_o four_o tyrannical_a empire_n be_v compact_v into_o one_o image_n and_o though_o they_o differ_v in_o some_o particular_n yet_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o greatness_n of_o dominion_n in_o this_o sense_n nothing_o do_v exclude_v the_o roman_a from_o be_v one_o of_o the_o four_n second_o they_o agree_v that_o all_o these_o tyrannical_a empire_n compact_v into_o one_o image_n continue_v a_o succession_n of_o that_o lordship_n which_o the_o first_o scil_n the_o babylonian_a do_v take_v from_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n if_o this_o be_v so_o the_o roman_a must_v begin_v as_o the_o four_o of_o daniel_n kingdom_n at_o that_o time_n only_o when_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n come_v under_o their_o dominion_n for_o though_o the_o roman_n be_v a_o mighty_a state_n and_o have_v gain_v to_o themselves_o a_o great_a power_n in_o the_o west_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o the_o sucsessor_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n in_o that_o monarchy_n which_o he_o have_v begin_v till_o they_o have_v take_v in_o the_o eastern_a country_n and_o bring_v the_o jewish_a church_n within_o the_o power_n of_o their_o kingdom_n but_o when_o this_o matter_n be_v once_o effect_v then_o do_v the_o roman_a begin_v as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n and_o this_o do_v necessary_o arise_v from_o the_o principle_n and_o foundation_n of_o such_o as_o have_v best_a expound_v the_o metal-kingdom_n object_n but_o some_o perhaps_o may_v allege_v you_o have_v former_o teach_v that_o the_o metal-kingdom_n do_v not_o only_o respect_v the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o people_n of_o the_o gentile_n also_o when_o the_o gentile_n come_v to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ._n sol._n this_o i_o confess_v to_o be_v a_o truth_n yet_o withal_o in_o the_o right_n state_v of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n we_o must_v have_v only_a respect_n to_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o when_o all_o these_o kingdom_n begin_v and_o in_o particular_a the_o four_o and_o the_o last_o there_o be_v no_o other_o church_n in_o all_o the_o world_n but_o that_o of_o the_o jew_n only_o afterward_o by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o apostle_n the_o church_n do_v great_o increase_v and_o the_o whole_a empire_n in_o its_o just_a latitude_n from_o east_n to_o west_n from_o north_n to_o south_n be_v the_o seat_n and_o the_o place_n of_o the_o church_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o revelation_n do_v discover_v her_o state_n according_a to_o the_o change_n of_o time_n in_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o roman_n but_o yet_o however_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o forementioned_a interpreter_n will_v strong_o enforce_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a when_o judea_n come_v under_o the_o power_n of_o that_o people_n see_v there_o be_v no_o church_n in_o all_o the_o world_n but_o that_o of_o the_o jew_n only_o object_n but_o if_o it_o be_v further_o allege_v why_o do_v you_o call_v this_o a_o principle_n of_o the_o most_o approve_a interpreter_n see_v you_o yourself_o do_v not_o allow_v their_o exposition_n in_o some_o particular_n sol._n so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o exposition_n be_v approve_v i_o do_v build_v upon_o it_o and_o it_o do_v strong_o enforce_v the_o conclusion_n and_o for_o the_o kind_n of_o interpreter_n i_o will_v show_v who_o be_v the_o most_o approve_a and_o why_o they_o be_v so_o call_v after_o such_o time_n as_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n to_o reveal_v to_o daniel_n the_o four_o age_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o type_n and_o similitude_n of_o four_o metal_n in_o the_o image_n this_o discovery_n have_v be_v various_o receive_v some_o only_a have_v a_o glare_a light_n of_o the_o truth_n have_v turn_v it_o into_o fable_n and_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o ovid_n in_o his_o metamorphosis_n
roman_a obedience_n or_o that_o all_o have_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n who_o be_v subject_n under_o that_o jurisdiction_n to_o speak_v proper_o they_o sin_v only_o against_o the_o kingly_a power_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o regal_a office_n as_o mediator_n that_o submit_v to_o the_o roman_a or_o rather_o to_o the_o antichristian_a dominion_n in_o these_o last_o time_n princ._n 12._o the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n ought_v so_o in_o special_a to_o be_v expound_v that_o the_o whole_a company_n which_o c●…rrieth_v the_o mark_n may_v be_v set_v in_o direct_a opposition_n to_o the_o 144000_o who_o have_v their_o father_n name_v write_v in_o their_o forehead_n this_o be_v clear_o prove_v from_o the_o collation_n of_o two_o scripture_n chap._n 13._o ver_fw-la 16_o 17_o 18._o with_o chap._n 14._o ver_fw-la 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o in_o the_o former_a scripture_n we_o have_v a_o description_n of_o those_o that_o worship_v the_o image_n and_o receive_v the_o mark_n and_o immediaie_o after_o they_o there_o be_v the_o description_n of_o those_o that_o be_v with_o the_o lamb_n upon_o mount_n zion_n and_o have_v their_o father_n name_v write_v in_o their_o forehead_n it_o be_v plain_a then_o that_o there_o be_v a_o immediate_a antithesis_fw-la or_o contraposition_n betwixt_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o beast_n the_o name_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o follower_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o beast_n there_o be_v then_o a_o perfect_a contrariety_n betwixt_o these_o two_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o prophecy_n they_o therefore_o who_o will_v right_o expound_v the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n must_v diligent_o observe_v the_o contraposition_n and_o by_o the_o one_o expound_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o other_o contrary_n but_o withal_o this_o rule_n ought_v to_o be_v remember_v that_o oppositio_fw-la must_v be_v in_o eodem_fw-la &_o circa_fw-la idem_fw-la the_o opposition_n must_v be_v in_o the_o same_o and_o about_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o therefore_o to_o apply_v the_o matter_n to_o particular_n i_o can_v see_v how_o mr._n potter_n do_v proceed_v by_o this_o rule_n in_o that_o contraposition_n of_o he_o between_o the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n first_o whereas_o he_o oppose_v the_o number_n 144_o to_o the_o number_n 666_o he_o shall_v have_v proceed_v in_o eodem_fw-la and_o make_v the_o opposition_n in_o the_o same_o matter_n if_o therefore_o 144000_o be_v the_o characteristical_a number_n of_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o lamb_n kingdom_n then_o 666000_o shall_v be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o so_o subject_a will_v be_v oppose_v to_o subject_a and_o number_n to_o number_n second_o mr._n potter_n oppose_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n which_o can_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v oppositio_fw-la in_o eodem_fw-la a_o opposition_n in_o and_o about_o the_o same_o matter_n for_o in_o the_o true_a apocalyptical_a method_n the_o beast_n be_v not_o so_o much_o oppose_v to_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n as_o to_o the_o lamb_n his_o ri●…al_n in_o kingly_a power_n if_o we_o will_v speak_v plain_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n be_v oppose_v to_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n the_o gospel-church_n to_o the_o roman_a idolatrous_a church_n for_o after_o that_o the_o saint_n have_v sing_v their_o halelujah_n at_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n these_o word_n be_v immediate_o add_v let_v we_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v for_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v come_v and_o his_o wife_n have_v make_v herself_o ready_a chap._n 19_o ver_fw-la 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o etc._n etc._n therefore_o the_o contrariety_n stand_v more_o immediate_o betwixt_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o beast_n the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n therefore_o the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v not_o so_o immediate_o oppose_v to_o the_o dimension_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o yet_o further_o in_o the_o opposition_n between_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o beast_n between_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n we_o must_v go_v so_o far_o only_a as_o may_v be_v well_o warrant_v by_o scripture_n or_o by_o necessary_a deduction_n from_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o whereas_o mr._n potter_n lay_v down_o this_o maxim_n the_o description_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n be_v not_o for_o this_o reason_n only_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n that_o by_o it_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v describe_v but_o that_o the_o false_a church_n of_o antichrist_n by_o way_n of_o antithesis_fw-la may_v by_o the_o same_o description_n mutatis_fw-la mutandis_fw-la be_v also_o manifest_o reveal_v pag._n 122._o this_o position_n of_o that_o learned_a author_n i_o do_v in_o part_n receive_v but_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o we_o be_v to_o extend_v it_o to_o every_o particular_a without_o any_o restriction_n we_o read_v in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n of_o 12_o gate_n 12_o apostle_n 12_o angel_n 12_o foundation_n and_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o we_o have_v warrant_v to_o look_v after_o such_o a_o set_a number_n of_o gate_n of_o angel_n of_o apostle_n of_o foundation_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o further_o if_o we_o can_v find_v such_o certain_a number_n in_o the_o city_n aforesaid_a it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n in_o hand_n for_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o prophecy_n not_o rome_n within_o such_o wall_n or_o gate_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o such_o a_o largeness_n and_o compass_n of_o territory_n be_v immediate_o oppose_v to_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n or_o the_o gospel-church_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o latter_a time_n at_o the_o end_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n we_o read_v in_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o witness_n that_o they_o do_v lie_v slay_v in_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n spiritual_o call_v sodom_n and_o egypt_n and_o where_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_a chap._n 11._o ver_fw-la 8._o now_o there_o be_v none_o that_o will_v say_v that_o they_o do_v lie_v slay_v in_o the_o street_n of_o rome_n literal_o so_o call_v but_o within_o the_o verge_n and_o precinct_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n this_o proper_o be_v the_o great_a city_n that_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n to_o the_o holy_a city_n to_o the_o lamb_n wife_n that_o come_v from_o god_n out_o of_o heaven_n princ._n 13._o the_o number_n ought_v so_o in_o special_a to_o be_v expound_v that_o it_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v 666_o in_o that_o method_n and_o way_n of_o account_n which_o be_v call_v the_o number_n of_o a_o man._n for_o so_o it_o be_v express_o say_v let_v he_o that_o have_v wisdom_n count_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n for_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o number_n of_o a_o man._n they_o therefore_o who_o will_v have_v lateinos_n or_o some_o such_o grammatical_a word_n to_o be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n how_o do_v they_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v the_o number_n of_o a_o man_n or_o that_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o man_n to_o calculate_v state_n and_o government_n by_o anagam_n or_o numeral_a letter_n of_o any_o grammatical_a name_n whatsoever_o princ._n 14._o the_o number_n ought_v so_o in_o special_a to_o be_v count_v not_o according_a to_o the_o subtlety_n of_o humane_a invention_n but_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o subject_a matter_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o suchlike_a description_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o subject_a matter_n the_o great_a sin_n of_o the_o world_n be_v in_o receive_v the_o name_n and_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o name_n and_o shall_v we_o think_v when_o the_o lord_n christ_n speak_v to_o his_o church_n concern_v these_o thing_n that_o only_o they_o who_o have_v skill_n in_o the_o subtlety_n and_o mystery_n of_o art_n shall_v have_v ability_n to_o understand_v his_o meaning_n sure_o though_o the_o number_n itself_o may_v be_v more_o mysterious_a yet_o the_o matter_n number_v must_v be_v in_o more_o open_a view_n second_o for_o the_o manner_n and_o use_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o suchlike_a description_n his_o use_n be_v to_o speak_v parabolical_o and_o typical_o and_o yet_o we_o find_v no_o one_o instance_n of_o the_o discovery_n of_o a_o government_n by_o the_o extraction_n of_o the_o square-root_n very_o often_o we_o find_v when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o rise_n of_o a_o government_n or_o the_o destruction_n of_o a_o state_n he_o do_v usual_o number_v such_o a_o chain_n or_o line_n of_o year_n to_o each_o such_o remarkable_a occurrence_n and_o he_o do_v refer_v we_o either_o to_o the_o chronologie_n of_o the_o bible_n or_o to_o the_o story_n of_o the_o church_n these_o
dead_a and_o the_o take_n up_o of_o those_o that_o shall_v remain_v to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n hereupon_o certain_a among_o the_o thessalonian_n mistake_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v conclude_v that_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o the_o general_a assembly_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v then_o at_o hand_n now_o to_o diminish_v this_o opinion_n the_o apostle_n do_v exhort_v they_o in_o these_o word_n i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o judgement_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o matter_n or_o cause_n of_o our_o gather_v together_o unto_o he_o that_o you_o be_v not_o soon_o shake_v in_o mind_n nor_o be_v trouble_v either_o by_o spirit_n by_o word_n or_o by_o letter_n as_o from_o we_o as_o that_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n be_v at_o hand_n this_o show_v plain_o that_o they_o do_v mistake_v the_o apostle_n in_o his_o former_a epistle_n and_o do_v understand_v his_o word_n as_o though_o christ_n shall_v come_v present_o to_o judgement_n now_o for_o their_o better_a information_n he_o proceed_v vers._n 3._o let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o by_o any_o mean_n for_o that_o day_n shall_v not_o come_v except_o there_o come_v a_o fall_v away_o first_o and_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v reveal_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n he_o plain_o show_v what_o thing_n shall_v precede_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n a_o general_a defection_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o this_o i_o take_v it_o do_v full_o open_v the_o meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n in_o the_o gospel_n concern_v the_o woeful_a state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o latter_a time_n he_o speak_v plain_o that_o many_o false_a christ_n shall_v arise_v and_o shall_v deceive_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o very_a elect_n matth._n 24._o 5_o 23_o 24._o now_o to_o what_o time_n can_v we_o better_o refer_v this_o then_o to_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostasy_n in_o which_o man_n shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o shall_v give_v heed_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 1._o now_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o there_o shall_v come_v a_o fall_n away_o first_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n as_o hierom_n do_v understand_v this_o of_o the_o defection_n from_o the_o roman_a empire_n though_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o text_n for_o the_o fall_v away_o here_o mean_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o true_a faith_n or_o from_o the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n so_o the_o word_n be_v use_v common_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o text_n do_v plain_o show_v that_o god_n give_v man_n up_o to_o delusion_n to_o believe_v lie_n because_o they_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v the_o word_n than_o do_v not_o intend_v a_o civil_a but_o a_o spiritual_a apostasy_n or_o fall_v away_o further_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v and_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v reveal_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n here_o be_v a_o great_a question_n whether_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostasy_n and_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n do_v begin_v all_o at_o one_o instant_a some_o will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v a_o figure_n which_o the_o rhetorician_n call_v hendyady_n but_o they_o be_v deceive_v for_o the_o word_n be_v plain_a that_o a_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o faith_n shall_v be_v by_o degree_n and_o when_o this_o apostasy_n shall_v come_v to_o some_o ripeness_n and_o maturity_n than_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v reveal_v for_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o the_o christian_a church_n shall_v degenerate_v so_o far_o from_o christ_n to_o take_v antichrist_n for_o her_o head_n but_o she_o must_v be_v mould_v prepare_v and_o wrought_v by_o degree_n for_o such_o a_o rebellion_n and_o for_o that_o expression_n the_o man_n of_o sin_n whereas_o the_o romish_a interpreter_n and_o hugo_n grotius_n in_o his_o tract_n de_fw-la antichristo_fw-la do_v take_v this_o for_o one_o individual_a man_n herein_o they_o be_v monstrous_a absurd_a for_o if_o he_o be_v one_o man_n as_o they_o suppose_v than_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v secret_o conceive_v in_o those_o first_o time_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v then_o begin_v to_o work_v and_o he_o further_o add_v that_o he_o shall_v continue_v till_o the_o last_o time_n who_o the_o lord_n shall_v consume_v with_o the_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o shall_v abolish_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n upon_o these_o ground_n if_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v one_o individual_a man_n he_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o long-lived_a he_o must_v live_v in_o a_o manner_n from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ._n but_o leave_v they_o to_o make_v good_a their_o own_o conceit_n to_o speak_v positive_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n mean_v in_o the_o text_n be_v a_o state_n or_o a_o succession_n of_o man_n in_o a_o state_n or_o government_n for_o john_n in_o the_o reulation_n do_v call_v this_o tyrannical_a empire_n by_o the_o title_n of_o a_o beast_n which_o all_o do_v know_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o prophet_n do_v intend_v a_o idolatrous_a or_o a_o persecute_v empire_n he_o be_v call_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n by_o a_o singular_a emphasis_n as_o be_v exceed_o sinful_a and_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n to_o other_o for_o so_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o scripture_n jeroboam_fw-la the_o son_n of_o nebat_fw-la that_o make_v israel_n to_o sin_n and_o if_o he_o be_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o render_v a_o reason_n why_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o perdition_n this_o title_n be_v sometime_o give_v to_o judas_n while_o i_o be_v with_o they_o in_o the_o world_n i_o keep_v they_o in_o thy_o name_n those_o that_o thou_o give_v i_o have_v i_o keep_v and_o none_o of_o they_o be_v lose_v save_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n joh._n 17._o 12._o in_o the_o next_o word_n the_o apostle_n do_v describe_v he_o according_a to_o his_o nature_n ver._n 4._o who_o oppose_v and_o exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o he_o as_o god_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n for_o his_o oppose_a himself_o this_o be_v speak_v in_o relation_n to_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v king_n priest_n and_o prophet_n so_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o revelat._n be_v set_v in_o immediate_a opposition_n against_o the_o lamb_n as_o if_o he_o be_v another_o christ_n the_o rival_n of_o his_o kingly_a power_n and_o dignity_n and_o whereas_o he_o do_v exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n interpreter_n do_v ordinary_o take_v this_o for_o magistrate_n whether_o inferior_a or_o superior_a above_o all_o which_o antichrist_n must_v advance_v himself_o the_o expression_n above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n be_v a_o style_n too_o diminuent_fw-la to_o express_v the_o true_a god_n by_o there_o be_v ma●…y_a that_o be_v call_v god_n yet_o to_o we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n 1_o cor._n 8._o 5._o this_o be_v speak_v of_o magistrate_n that_o they_o be_v call_v god_n and_o above_o all_o these_o antichrist_n as_o he_o do_v pretend_v himself_o universal_a head_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v exalt_v himself_o further_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n this_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n where_o god_n be_v worship_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n of_o old_a now_o that_o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v clear_a from_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n know_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v holy_a which_o you_o be_v 1_o cor._n 3._o 16._o the_o result_n of_o the_o whole_a speech_n be_v this_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o in_o his_o episcopal_a see_n for_o so_o the_o word_n in_o the_o original_a do_v signify_v cathedraticâ_fw-la potestate_fw-la praesidere_fw-la by_o these_o word_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o formality_n of_o antichristianism_n lie_v in_o the_o universal_a headship_n for_o when_o the_o apostle_n do_v describe_v the_o great_a antichrist_n by_o his_o nature_n he_o say_v that_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o the_o supreme_a lord_n and_o ruler_n therefore_o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o i_o have_v so_o large_o dispure_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o treatise_n that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o
of_o holiness_n that_o very_o godly_a man_n themselves_o may_v be_v deceive_v by_o it_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o let_v we_o consider_v that_o the_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o for_o the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n there_o be_v some_o beginning_n thereof_o in_o the_o very_a apostle_n day_n his_o authority_n be_v so_o great_a that_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o law_n paul_n charge_v he_o that_o he_o do_v compel_v the_o gentile_n to_o be_v circumcise_v gal._n 2._o 13_o 14._o i_o demand_v then_o how_o do_v he_o compel_v they_o not_o by_o precept_n or_o command_n not_o by_o any_o coercive_a power_n but_o by_o his_o example_n his_o authority_n be_v so_o great_a in_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o people_n of_o those_o time_n that_o be_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o law_n and_o barnabas_n himself_o also_o be_v draw_v away_o with_o their_o dissimulation_n s._n paul_n also_o a_o eminent_a apostle_n seem_v to_o be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o peter_n for_o so_o he_o express_v himself_o james_n and_o john_n and_o cephus_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v pillar_n gal._n 2._o 9_o such_o credit_n have_v peter_n with_o the_o faithful_a in_o those_o first_o time_n and_o true_o after_o his_o death_n it_o be_v not_o diminish_v for_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n conceive_v he_o to_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v ascribe_v more_o than_o too_o much_o to_o his_o successor_n and_o to_o that_o succession_n for_o his_o sake_n at_o least_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o do_v take_v too_o much_o upon_o they_o under_o that_o consideration_n and_o this_o do_v go_v on_o and_o increase_v so_o by_o degree_n that_o it_o do_v never_o leave_v till_o it_o come_v at_o that_o pitch_n at_o last_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v declare_v universal_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o universal_a headship_n we_o call_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o remarkable_a appearance_n thereof_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n and_o look_v as_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v a_o promise_n of_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v hold_v in_o expectation_n about_o the_o time_n of_o his_o come_n so_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v forewarn_v of_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n be_v also_o bu●…ied_v about_o the_o time_n of_o his_o come_n now_o for_o the_o mean_n to_o understand_v the_o time_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v first_o they_o be_v to_o look_v to_o the_o revolution_n of_o empire_n second_o to_o the_o number_n of_o year_n to_o the_o set_n up_o of_o that_o state_n or_o government_n for_o the_o revolution_n of_o empire_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o that_o let_v will_v let_v till_o he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n all_o the_o ancient_n do_v understand_v this_o of_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o when_o the_o empire_n shall_v be_v remove_v than_o they_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o his_o time_n again_o we_o have_v further_o prove_v that_o the_o time_n of_o his_o come_n be_v not_o only_o discoverable_a by_o the_o change_n and_o revolution_n of_o empire_n but_o by_o the_o number_n of_o year_n for_o if_o you_o reckon_v 666_o year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdome_n you_o will_v come_v punctual_o prec●…ely_o and_o determinate_o to_o the_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n d●…_n main_o treat_v of_o in_o this_o chapter_n that_o when_o a●…_n 〈◊〉_d ●…e_o shall_v sit_v as_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n that_o be_v he_o 〈◊〉_d sit_v in_o the_o church_n as_o in_o his_o ep●…opal_a ●…ee_n from_o the_o ●…ope_n of_o the_o whole_a it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o formality_n of_o 〈◊〉_d d●…h_v lie_v in_o the_o universal_a headship_n and_o for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o revelation_n thereof_o the_o apostle_n say_v it_o must_v be_v after_o the_o removal_n of_o the_o old_a empire_n and_o then_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o his_o time_n now_o this_o time_n can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o universal_a headship_n under_o the_o emperor_n p●…ocas_n 666_o year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdome_n and_o so_o john_n in_o the_o revelation_n and_o paul_n in_o the_o thessalonian_n do_v agree_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o both_o scripture_n do_v facere_fw-la paria_fw-la now_o then_o to_o gather_v up_o all_o into_o one_o sum_n see_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o interpretation_n be_v verify_v in_o all_o the_o particular_n of_o the_o text_n rev._n 13._o see_v also_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o whole_a sense_n of_o the_o chapter_n rev._n 17._o see_v also_o it_o agree_v with_o all_o the_o principle_n and_o ground_n throughout_o the_o whole_a prophecy_n and_o last_o of_o all_o see_v it_o do_v full_o con●…ent_v with_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o th●…ssalonians_n we_o may_v safe_o conclude_v that_o we_o have_v give_v a_o right_a exposition_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o have_v true_o show_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o beast_n his_o name_n image_n mark_v and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n now_o we_o will_v come_v to_o the_o practical_a part_n to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o point_n chap._n xii_o the_o application_n of_o the_o whole_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v make_v first_o of_o those_o thing_n t●…at_a be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o if_o we_o apply_v ourselves_o to_o the_o time_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o term_v ●…ntichristian_a be_v use_v by_o sundry_a sort_n of_o man_n for_o sundry_a kind_n of_o intere●…_n ●…ome_o do_v use_v it_o aright_o and_o other_o do_v dangerousl●…_n and_o schismatical_o traduce_v by_o the_o misapplication_n thereof_o for_o see_v the_o great_a sin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v consist_v in_o this_o in_o subject_v themselves_o to_o a_o antichristian_a authority_n and_o to_o the_o law_n ma●…e_v by_o that_o power_n and_o see_v i●…_n be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n to_o separate_v and_o depart_v from_o such_o a_o authority_n as_o be_v so_o diametral_o contrar●…_n to_o the_o crown_n and_o dignity_n of_o christ_n their_o sovereign_a lord_n in_o this_o point_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o the_o protestant_a church_n have_v right_o reject_v the_o beast_n his_o name_n mark_v image_n and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n as_o they_o have_v cast_v away_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o law_n as_o they_o stand_v by_o that_o power_n and_o headship_n in_o all_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o ●…atise_n af●…regoing_v we_o have_v large_o prove_v that_o the_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o name_n direct●…_n oppose_v to_o the_o name_n p●…wer_n and_o headship_n of_o the_o lam●…_n and_o therefore_o the_o protestant_a church_n as_o former_o so_o now_o ●…ave_v just_a reason_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o she_o ha●…h_v depart_v from_o christ._n now_o the_o friend_n and_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o separation_n do_v endeavour_n in_o these_o time_n to_o go_v in_o t●…e_n same_o method_n for_o by_o this_o they_o think_v to_o free_v themselves_o from_o schism_n when_o they_o be_v put_v upon_o it_o to_o give_v a_o reason_n why_o they_o depart_v from_o the_o ministry_n from_o the_o ordinance_n and_o the_o public_a worship_n they_o tell_v we_o the_o ministry_n be_v antichristian_a they_o have_v not_o renounce_v their_o call_v by_o the_o bishop_n in_o a_o word_n they_o call_v all_o that_o antichristian_a which_o have_v be_v use_v in_o antichristian_a time_n and_o have_v a_o conveyance_n and_o transmission_n down_o to_o we_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o antichristian_a man_n which_o position_n of_o they_o as_o it_o be_v most_o erroneous_a and_o false_a so_o it_o do_v draw_v many_o dangerous_a consequence_n along_o with_o it_o therefore_o to_o prevent_v such_o cunning_a trick_n of_o legerdemain_n we_o will_v lay_v down_o the_o truth_n distinct_o first_o we_o will_v show_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v direct_o antichristian_a second_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v antichristian_a by_o analogy_n and_o reduction_n three_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v antichristian_a by_o the_o position_n of_o some_o circumstance_n as_o they_o be_v true_o christian_n by_o the_o position_n of_o other_o four_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v antichristian_a false_o so_o call_v for_o that_o which_o be_v ●…ruly_o antichristian_a all_o such_o be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o mark_v of_o the_o beast_n in_o their_o forehead_n and_o right-hand_a for_o the_o mark_n in_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v say_v he_o cause_v all_o to_o
the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v come_v too_o near_o to_o the_o formality_n of_o anti-christianism_a antiochus_n epiphanes_n in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n be_v describe_v as_o a_o mighty_a king_n or_o potentate_n in_o the_o seleucian_n line_n but_o when_o he_o be_v not_o content_v with_o his_o power_n which_o be_v great_a enough_o but_o will_v exalt_v himself_o against_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o host_n and_o tread_v down_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o do_v all_o thing_n after_o his_o own_o will_n in_o this_o he_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o antichrist_n to_o come_v dan._n 8._o 12._o but_o that_o we_o may_v speak_v more_o distinct_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n we_o do_v desire_v to_o lay_v down_o this_o necessary_a caution_n in_o the_o beginning_n let_v we_o then_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o essence_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o power_n for_o the_o essence_n we_o do_v willing_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v ordain_v magistrate_n to_o be_v over_o the_o people_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o the_o public_a good_a and_o that_o magistracy_n be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n rom._n 13._o v._n 1_o 2_o 3._o and_o though_o he_o have_v not_o tie_v any_o nation_n or_o people_n so_o strict_o and_o precise_o to_o this_o or_o that_o particular_a form_n of_o government_n yet_o his_o pleasure_n be_v that_o the_o people_n shall_v obey_v the_o government_n that_o be_v set_v over_o they_o in_o this_o case_n if_o they_o resist_v the_o power_n they_o resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o draw_v great_a guilt_n upon_o their_o soul_n for_o their_o resist_n if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o nation_n and_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n they_o do_v meet_v with_o the_o great_a change_n and_o alteration_n of_o state_n yet_o in_o each_o alteration_n the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v obey_v the_o civil_a authority_n set_v over_o they_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o public_a peace_n the_o hard_a change_n that_o they_o ever_o meet_v withal_o be_v the_o translation_n of_o their_o state_n from_o the_o house_n of_o david_n yet_o they_o be_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n &_o seek_v the_o good_a of_o the_o city_n whither_o they_o be_v carry_v captive_a all_o this_o plain_o show_v that_o magistracy_n be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v his_o own_o command_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o his_o people_n though_o they_o do_v live_v under_o heathen_a king_n second_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v the_o exercise_n of_o the_o power_n and_o here_o first_o be_v the_o lawful_a execution_n and_o second_o the_o exorbitancy_n and_o excess_n of_o the_o power_n above_o law_n for_o the_o lawful_a use_n of_o the_o power_n we_o do_v willing_o yield_v that_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n have_v not_o only_a authority_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n but_o he_o have_v also_o great_a power_n in_o and_o about_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o thing_n we_o have_v often_o incu●…cated_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o treatise_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o reign_n of_o christ_n do_v begin_v upon_o the_o earth_n when_o the_o kingdom_n state_n and_o government_n of_o this_o world_n become_v nurse_n father_n to_o the_o church_n and_o so_o we_o do_v affirm_v that_o it_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o high_a power_n to_o take_v order_n that_o unity_n and_o peace_n be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o truth_n be_v keep_v pure_a and_o entire_a that_o horrid_a blasphemy_n be_v suppress_v that_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n be_v due_o settle_v that_o the_o profane_a the_o ignorant_a and_o rude_a body_n of_o the_o people_n who_o of_o themselves_o will_v never_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v bring_v by_o their_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o public_a place_n of_o worship_n for_o the_o better_a effect_v of_o which_o they_o have_v power_n to_o call_v synod_n to_o be_v present_a at_o they_o and_o to_o provide_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v transact_v in_o they_o be_v according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n in_o this_o sense_n we_o may_v not_o doubt_v to_o say_v that_o the_o chief_a magistrate_n in_o every_o commonwealth_n be_v the_o supreme_a head_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o supreme_a head_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a that_o do_v of_o right_o appertain_v to_o he_o and_o do_v fall_v under_o his_o cognizance_n by_o the_o law-divine_a in_o the_o forementioned_a case_n he_o be_v the_o delegate_n and_o vicegerent_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o this_o we_o take_v to_o be_v the_o lawful_a exercise_n of_o the_o power_n three_o there_o be_v the_o hyperbole_n or_o excess_n of_o the_o power_n when_o the_o magistrate_n be_v not_o content_v with_o his_o own_o limit_n or_o bound_n but_o shall_v further_o endeavour_v to_o carry_v all_o by_o will_n and_o prerogative_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n this_o be_v that_o which_o come_v near_a to_o the_o formality_n of_o antichristianism_n for_o antichrist_n be_v say_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n if_o therefore_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n shall_v do_v the_o same_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n if_o he_o shall_v control_v and_o do_v all_o thing_n after_o his_o own_o will_n in_o the_o house_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v to_o resemble_v the_o great_a antichrist_n and_o to_o do_v the_o same_o in_o effect_n which_o he_o do_v but_o for_o this_o we_o have_v a_o clear_a example_n in_o steven_n gardiner_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n who_o of_o all_o other_o be_v note_v by_o foreign_a divine_n to_o cry_v up_o such_o a_o excessive_a prerogative_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a for_o he_o do_v not_o shun_v to_o maintain_v that_o it_o be_v at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o king_n to_o abrogate_v statute_n and_o institute_v new_a rite_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n yea_o he_o further_o say_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o king_n to_o forbid_v the_o people_n the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o the_o use_n of_o marriage_n to_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o ●…round_n of_o all_o this_o be_v because_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a now_o in_o way_n of_o opposition_n to_o this_o the_o foreign_a divine_n have_v rise_v with_o great_a indignation_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o dr._n rivet_n in_o his_o explication_n of_o the_o decalogue_n edit_n 2._o pag._n 203._o qui_fw-la enim_fw-la papatus_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la adhuc_fw-la fovebat_fw-la ut_fw-la posteà_fw-la apparuit_fw-la novum_fw-la papatum_fw-la in_o personâ_fw-la regis_fw-la erigebat_fw-la for_o he_o meaning_n steven_n gardiner_n aforesaid_a who_o do_v as_o yet_o nourish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papacy_n as_o after_o it_o appear_v do_v erect_v a_o new_a papacy_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o king_n and_o calvin_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o amos_n chap._n 7_o ver_fw-la 13._o speak_v of_o they_o who_o do_v ascribe_v the_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a to_o hen._n 8._o king_n of_o england_n have_v these_o word_n hoc_fw-la i_o semper_fw-la gravitèr_fw-la vulneravit_fw-la quum_fw-la vocarent_fw-la ipsum_fw-la summum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la caput_fw-la sub_fw-la christo._n this_o have_v grievous_o wound_v i_o always_o when_o they_o call_v he_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n under_o christ._n he_o do_v take_v this_o for_o no_o other_o than_o a_o encroachment_n upon_o the_o prerogative_n of_o christ._n and_o he_o may_v well_o do_v so_o if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o steven_n gardiner_n aforemention_v with_o who_o he_o have_v to_o do_v but_o the_o learned_a man_n do_v proceed_v in_o these_o word_n it_o be_v certain_a if_o king_n do_v their_o duty_n they_o be_v both_o patron_n of_o religion_n and_o nurse_n father_n of_o the_o church_n as_o isaiah_n call_v they_o chap._n 49._o ver_fw-la 23._o this_o therefore_o be_v principal_o require_v of_o king_n that_o they_o use_v the_o sword_n wherewith_o they_o be_v furnish_v for_o the_o maintain_n of_o god_n worship_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n there_o be_v inconsiderate_a man_n who_o make_v they_o too_o spiritual_a and_o this_o fault_n reign_v up_o and_o down_o germany_n yea_o spread_v too_o much_o in_o these_o country_n and_o now_o we_o perceive_v what_o fruit_n spring_v from_o this_o root_n viz._n that_o prince_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o place_n of_o government_n think_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o spiritual_a that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o this_o sacrilege_n creep_v among_o we_o because_o they_o can_v measure_v their_o office_n with_o certain_a and_o lawful_a bound_n but_o be_v of_o opinion_n they_o can_v reign_v unless_o they_o abol●…sh_v all_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o become_v the_o chief_a judge_n both_o in_o
the_o house_n upon_o his_o child_n by_o a_o violent_a wind_n he_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n when_o he_o be_v let_v loose_a and_o so_o true_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o lose_n of_o satan_n god_n do_v permit_v he_o to_o do_v great_a thing_n to_o deceive_v that_o kind_n of_o people_n who_o have_v forsake_v the_o plain_a way_n to_o salvation_n write_v in_o the_o word_n to_o look_v after_o dispensation_n of_o a_o high_a light_n by_o vision_n dream_n and_o revelation_n now_o then_o to_o make_v application_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n to_o our_o time_n my_o speech_n and_o exhortation_n be_v to_o they_o who_o among_o we_o have_v depart_v from_o ordinance_n and_o from_o scripture_n and_o be_v now_o for_o extraordinary_a revelation_n my_o earnest_a desire_n be_v to_o they_o that_o they_o will_v lay_v these_o thing_n to_o heart_n if_o they_o go_v on_o if_o they_o build_v upon_o such_o uncertain_a ground_n let_v they_o serious_o consider_v whether_o they_o may_v not_o be_v delude_v by_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o whether_o god_n in_o his_o just_a judgement_n may_v not_o deliver_v they_o over_o to_o believe_v lie_n i_o will_v not_o make_v mention_n of_o that_o sect_n which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o quaker_n what_o they_o be_v and_o who_o they_o be_v god_n know_v i_o do_v desire_n to_o contain_v myself_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o i_o have_v some_o experience_n of_o there_o have_v be_v some_o friend_n of_o my_o familiarity_n heretofore_o who_o i_o do_v conceive_v to_o be_v people_n of_o good_a hope_n these_o as_o i_o have_v observe_v have_v depart_v first_o from_o the_o ministry_n and_o then_o have_v come_v to_o slight_v the_o write_a word_n and_o then_o last_o of_o all_o to_o hang_v upon_o revelation_n and_o extraordinary_a enthusiasm_n of_o the_o spirit_n i_o have_v see_v a_o book_n scatter_v abroad_o by_o these_o man_n it_o bear_v the_o title_n of_o gerard_n winstanley_n his_o new_a law_n of_o righteousness_n the_o argument_n of_o the_o treatise_n be_v that_o the_o propriety_n of_o good_n be_v the_o curse_n lay_v upon_o the_o creature_n that_o all_o thing_n shall_v lie_v in_o common_a and_o that_o the_o whole_a earth_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o public_a treasury_n for_o probation_n of_o this_o as_o he_o do_v make_v some_o mention_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n and_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o future_a glorious_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n so_o for_o the_o more_o special_a confirmation_n of_o this_o he_o do_v depend_v upon_o a_o extraordinary_a revelation_n as_o it_o be_v express_v pag._n 57_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o treatise_n he_o do_v distinguish_v three_o ministration_n the_o ministration_n of_o moses_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o say_v he_o as_o the_o worshipper_n in_o moses_n ministration_n envy_v those_o that_o worship_v the_o son_n of_o man_n so_o those_o who_o now_o worship_n christ_n at_o a_o distance_n in_o their_o several_a congregation_n and_o form_n and_o be_v most_o zealous_a these_o be_v the_o bitter_a enemy_n to_o the_o ministration_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o spirit_n pag._n 14._o but_o further_a when_o he_o come_v to_o expound_v himself_o concern_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o slight_v all_o outward_a form_n and_o do_v look_v only_o to_o inward_a teach_n now_o i_o will_v speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o to_o the_o follower_n of_o this_o way_n i_o will_v not_o say_v in_o positive_a term_n that_o they_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o delusion_n of_o satan_n neither_o will_v i_o judge_v of_o their_o final_a estate_n they_o stand_v or_o fall_v to_o their_o own_o master_n yet_o nevertheless_o i_o may_v be_v so_o bold_a see_v they_o have_v so_o often_o in_o their_o mouth_n the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o come_v out_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n and_o that_o every_o thing_n be_v antichristian_a not_o only_o in_o m●…nistery_n magistracy_n but_o also_o in_o the_o propriety_n of_o good_n to_o desire_v they_o to_o look_v home_o to_o their_o own_o heart_n whether_o they_o be_v not_o most_o antichristian_a themselves_o or_o whether_o that_o spirit_n which_o do_v so_o strong_o deceive_v the_o antichristian_a world_n do_v not_o deceive_v they_o also_o when_o they_o do_v believe_v and_o profess_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v direct_o and_o diametral_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n for_o these_o man_n though_o i_o do_v desire_n to_o speak_v moderate_o of_o they_o yet_o in_o some_o particular_n they_o be_v deliver_v over_o to_o deep_a delusion_n when_o they_o go_v so_o palpable_o against_o the_o write_a word_n and_o pretend_v extraordinary_a revelation_n it_o be_v good_a in_o this_o case_n that_o they_o will_v judge_v themselves_o that_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v in_o the_o event_n the_o great_a promoter_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n i_o be_o persuade_v that_o gregory_n the_o great_a be_v in_o the_o main_a a_o godly_a and_o zealous_a man_n yet_o it_o appear_v by_o his_o dialogue_n that_o he_o do_v run_v into_o foul_a error_n into_o idolatry_n into_o will-worship_n and_o the_o like_a when_o he_o leave_v the_o scripture_n to_o follow_v revelation_n this_o be_v the_o only_a word_n which_o i_o do_v desire_n to_o speak_v to_o they_o second_o here_o be_v also_o a_o word_n of_o admonition_n for_o all_o those_o who_o endeavour_n in_o these_o time_n to_o extinguish_v book-learning_n for_o though_o it_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a truth_n and_o much_o to_o be_v lament_v that_o man_n have_v look_v too_o much_o to_o scholarship_n and_o have_v make_v a_o idol_n of_o it_o for_o they_o have_v not_o regard_v the_o inward_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n nor_o the_o spiritual_a understanding_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o salvation_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a qualification_n to_o prepare_v and_o fit_a man_n for_o the_o ministry_n these_o thing_n i_o confess_v have_v be_v too_o much_o slight_v and_o the_o slight_n and_o neglect_n of_o they_o have_v be_v a_o great_a cause_n of_o hurt_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o damage_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n this_o shall_v never_o be_v deny_v by_o i_o for_o how_o may_v we_o probable_o conceive_v that_o a_o minister_n will_v come_v home_o with_o the_o demonstration_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o spirit_n so_o powerful_o at_o least_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o hearer_n when_o he_o himself_o be_v altogether_o a_o stranger_n to_o these_o inward_a work_n how_o can_v he_o so_o effectual_o bring_v home_o the_o lose_a son_n of_o man_n to_o christ_n when_o he_o himself_o never_o have_v a_o true_a feel_n of_o his_o lose_a condition_n they_o must_v needs_o then_o run_v into_o a_o great_a extreme_a who_o dote_v so_o much_o upon_o secular_a learning_n and_o do_v neglect_v the_o chief_a thing_n but_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o go_v as_o far_o out_o of_o the_o way_n who_o will_v have_v this_o kind_n of_o learning_n to_o be_v extinguish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n this_o i_o much_o fear_n may_v be_v one_o mean_v to_o throw_v the_o world_n back_o again_o upon_o vision_n dream_n and_o revelation_n to_o set_v up_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n once_o more_o now_o whereas_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o there_o be_v excellent_a preacher_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o there_o be_v no_o university_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o humane_a learning_n acquire_v by_o study_n though_o this_o shall_v be_v grant_v those_o extraordinary_a revelation_n be_v now_o cease_v therefore_o we_o must_v be_v content_v to_o go_v in_o the_o ordinary_a way_n and_o not_o to_o look_v for_o those_o extraordinary_a distribution_n which_o be_v in_o the_o first_o time_n they_o who_o be_v for_o the_o dissolve_v of_o university_n and_o for_o the_o total_a cashier_n of_o humane_a learning_n let_v they_o stay_v until_o there_o be_v a_o renovation_n and_o a_o return_n of_o these_o extraordinary_a gift_n unto_o the_o church_n some_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o such_o time_n shall_v come_v if_o that_o be_v true_a let_v they_o be_v patient_a till_o they_o do_v come_v however_o as_o the_o case_n do_v stand_v for_o the_o present_a i_o believe_v they_o who_o take_v away_o humane_a learning_n do_v what_o in_o they_o lie_v to_o reduce_v the_o antichristian_a time_n all_o do_v agree_v that_o in_o these_o time_n the_o church_n be_v in_o a_o eclipse_n or_o great_a darkness_n now_o let_v we_o inquire_v after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emersion_n how_o the_o church_n come_v out_o and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o immersion_n how_o she_o be_v bring_v into_o this_o darkness_n for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emersion_n most_o do_v pitch_n upon_o it_o that_o she_o wade_v out_o of_o obscurity_n at_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n when_o the_o eternal_a gospel_n begin_v to_o be_v preach_v to_o every_o kindred_n tongue_n and_o
to_o be_v lay_v aside_o and_o because_o they_o read_v when_o the_o beast_n do_v bear_v rule_n that_o he_o do_v compel_v all_o the_o world_n to_o receive_v a_o mark_n and_o that_o none_o may_v buy_v nor_o sell_v but_o they_o that_o have_v the_o mark_n in_o their_o forehead_n and_o in_o their_o right-hand_n thereupon_o they_o gather_v that_o all_o coercion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v after_o the_o antichristian_a form_n and_o because_o they_o will_v stand_v far_o enough_o from_o that_o pattern_n they_o think_v it_o best_o and_o most_o comporting_a with_o the_o future_a glory_n of_o the_o church_n to_o leave_v all_o to_o a_o boundless_a toleration_n nay_o some_o learned_a man_n of_o good_a note_n have_v go_v so_o far_o that_o they_o look_v upon_o the_o edict_n of_o constantine_n and_o the_o succeed_a prince_n as_o upon_o the_o bottom-stone_n of_o the_o tower_n of_o babel_n and_o their_o ground_n be_v this_o because_o the_o law_n which_o the_o aforementioned_a prince_n do_v make_v for_o the_o suppress_n of_o blasphemy_n and_o idolatry_n be_v afterward_o pervert_v and_o turn_v against_o the_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o antichristian_a time_n we_o willing_o yield_v that_o great_a care_n be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o this_o matter_n yet_o withal_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o coercive_a power_n as_o it_o be_v true_o christian_n by_o the_o position_n of_o some_o circumstance_n may_v be_v antichristian_a by_o the_o position_n of_o other_o the_o circumstance_n do_v vary_v the_o case_n the_o papist_n be_v not_o antichristian_a in_o this_o as_o they_o compel_v man_n to_o come_v to_o the_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n for_o some_o godless_a and_o wretched_a man_n will_v never_o worship_v god_n nor_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n but_o their_o antichristianity_n lie_v in_o this_o as_o they_o compel_v man_n to_o a_o idolatrous_a will-worship_n of_o their_o own_o devise_v they_o be_v not_o antichristian_a in_o that_o as_o they_o hold_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v monarchical_a or_o that_o there_o be_v one_o ecumenical_a bishop_n of_o all_o so_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o great_a bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 25._o and_o chap._n 5._o v._n 3._o but_o their_o antichristianism_n lie_v in_o this_o as_o they_o make_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n universal_a bishop_n and_o do_v compel_v all_o man_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o law_n as_o to_o the_o law_n of_o christ._n we_o must_v distinguish_v the_o coercive_a power_n for_o it_o may_v be_v either_o christian_n or_o antichristian_a as_o the_o circumstance_n do_v stand_v nabuchadnezzar_n do_v set_v up_o a_o image_n and_o command_v all_o the_o state_n of_o his_o empire_n under_o pair_n of_o death_n to_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v it_o in_o this_o act_n of_o compulsion_n he_o do_v come_v in_o the_o near_a resemblance_n to_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o revelation_n and_o be_v no_o doubt_n a_o type_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o antichrist_n that_o be_v to_o come_v but_o this_o do_v not_o hold_v in_o every_o kind_n for_o afterward_o we_o read_v that_o the_o same_o nabuchadnezzar_n do_v make_v a_o decree_n that_o every_o nation_n and_o language_n that_o shall_v speak_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o god_n of_o shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n shall_v be_v cut_v in_o piece_n in_o this_o case_n we_o can_v say_v that_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o compulsory_a power_n be_v antichristian_a unless_o we_o will_v make_v it_o antichristianism_n to_o restrain_v idolater_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o the_o true_a god_n i_o may_v here_o take_v occasion_n to_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o law_n make_v by_o the_o king_n of_o nineveh_n and_o his_o noble_n that_o all_o under_o that_o government_n shall_v fast_v and_o pray_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v turn_v every_o one_o from_o the_o evil_n of_o his_o way_n though_o here_o be_v the_o use_n of_o the_o compulsory_a power_n yet_o none_o can_v say_v that_o they_o do_v symbolize_v with_o antichrist_n in_o his_o tyranny_n over_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n the_o lord_n do_v turn_v from_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o the_o commendation_n of_o their_o repentance_n be_v upon_o record_n in_o the_o story_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v we_o may_v conclude_v as_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o coercive_a power_n about_o matter_n of_o religion_n may_v in_o some_o case_n be_v tyrannical_a and_o antichristian_a so_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o in_o other_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o true_o christian_n and_o man_n do_v unadvised_o jumble_v and_o confound_v those_o thing_n together_o which_o shall_v be_v distinct_o lay_v down_o second_o many_o in_o these_o time_n think_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o christ_n for_o 1000_o year_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n too_o near_o to_o resemble_v the_o antichristian_a pomp_n and_o magnificence_n now_o say_v they_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o christian_a church_n for_o as_o long_o as_o she_o be_v in_o this_o vale_n of_o tear_n she_o be_v liable_a to_o continual_a suffering_n and_o indeed_o the_o practice_n of_o man_n have_v be_v some_o way_n suitable_a to_o this_o opinion_n for_o see_v the_o great_a riches_n splendour_n magnificence_n and_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o her_o merchant_n be_v the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o earth_n they_o have_v set_v upon_o such_o a_o way_n of_o reformation_n in_o cast_v out_o romish_n idolatry_n and_o superstition_n that_o they_o have_v leave_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n poor_a enough_o in_o many_o place_n the_o maintenance_n be_v so_o bare_a that_o the_o minister_n have_v scarce_o wherewithal_o to_o keep_v they_o upon_o the_o work_n in_o their_o conscience_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o gospel-church_n must_v stand_v in_o penury_n and_o want_n of_o outward_a thing_n because_o the_o romish_a antichristian_a church_n have_v enjoy_v these_o thing_n in_o so_o great_a plenty_n but_o in_o this_o point_n to_o my_o understanding_n they_o be_v great_o deceive_v for_o the_o prophet_n and_o john_n in_o the_o revelation_n do_v everywhere_o speak_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n that_o shall_v be_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v come_v to_o the_o beauty_n of_o her_o rise_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v nursing-fathers_n that_o they_o shall_v bring_v their_o glory_n to_o she_o mr._n burrough_n in_o his_o lecture_n upon_o hosea_n be_v very_o solid_a and_o copious_a upon_o the_o point_n and_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v true_o explain_v we_o may_v find_v great_a comfort_n in_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n but_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n and_o we_o shall_v there_o see_v thing_n more_o clear_o make_v cut_v it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o the_o saint_n at_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n let_v we_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v and_o give_v honour_n to_o he_o for_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v come_v and_o his_o wife_n have_v make_v herself_o ready_a rev._n 19_o 7._o now_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n it_o be_v explain_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o lamb_n wife_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o angel_n to_o john_n v_o 9_o come_v hither_o and_o i_o will_v show_v thou_o the_o bride_n the_o lamb_n wife_n and_o he_o carry_v i_o away_o in_o the_o spirit_n to_o a_o great_a high_a mountain_n and_o show_v i_o that_o great_a city_n the_o holy_a jerusalem_n descend_v out_o of_o heaven_n from_o god_n here_o then_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n or_o the_o gospel-church_n in_o relation_n to_o her_o felicity_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n be_v term_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o great_a city_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o greatness_n and_o magnificence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n which_o have_v everywhere_o in_o the_o prophecy_n such_o a_o transcendent_a title_n ascribe_v to_o she_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n do_v plain_o show_v that_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v enjoy_v time_n of_o great_a glory_n but_o the_o great_a question_n be_v concern_v the_o new_a jerusalem_n whether_o this_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o let_v we_o look_v to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a prophecy_n in_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n we_o read_v and_o the_o first_o verse_n that_o a_o woman_n be_v clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n be_v under_o her_o foot_n and_o upon_o her_o head_n a_o crown_n of_o twelve_o star_n and_o she_o be_v with_o child_n cry_v travel_v in_o birth_n and_o pain_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o woman_n be_v mean_v the_o primitive_a church_n as_o she_o be_v in_o travel_n with_o
the_o other_o side_n i_o conceive_v that_o it_o be_v too_o high_a to_o call_v hen._n 8._o or_o any_o other_o supreme_a magistrate_n a_o head_n much_o more_o a_o good_a head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o eminency_n transcendency_n and_o sublimity_n of_o that_o prerogative_n belong_v to_o christ_n alone_o our_o prince_n have_v use_v such_o a_o title_n and_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o statute_n in_o a_o moderate_a way_n the_o people_n have_v ascribe_v it_o to_o they_o to_o wit_n a_o spiritual_a power_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n that_o ever_o have_v belong_v to_o king_n and_o prince_n which_o david_n solomon_n the_o king_n of_o judah_n and_o christian_a emperor_n have_v ever_o exercise_v in_o their_o respective_a dominion_n this_o no_o doubt_n have_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o well-meaning_a man_n and_o so_o mr._n bedel_n do_v expound_v it_o in_o the_o forementioned_a place_n and_o pag._n 56._o but_o for_o my_o part_n be_v enlighten_v and_o better_o inform_v i_o pray_v god_n such_o title_n be_v no_o more_o use_v and_o let_v that_o passage_n next_o under_o thou_o and_o thy_o christ_n in_o all_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a in_o these_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n supreme_a head_n and_o governor_n let_v the_o exuberancy_n of_o such_o a_o title_n pass_v among_o the_o iniquity_n of_o our_o holy_a thing_n our_o godly_a friend_n have_v be_v offend_v at_o it_o our_o enemy_n have_v insult_v experience_n have_v show_v much_o danger_n in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o and_o the_o present_a treatise_n i_o doubt_v not_o will_v show_v what_o a_o evil_a thing_n it_o be_v to_o take_v away_o the_o prerogative_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o make_v other_o head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o room_n of_o all_o man_n live_v the_o erastians_n have_v great_a cause_n to_o look_v to_o this_o for_o let_v prince_n be_v once_o tell_v that_o there_o be_v no_o church-government_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o themselves_o be_v the_o sole_a fountain_n of_o church-power_n by_o this_o mean_n it_o will_v be_v effect_v that_o the_o name_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n over_o his_o own_o church_n will_v be_v pluck_v down_o and_o the_o name_n and_o headship_n of_o prince_n will_v be_v only_o set_v up_o in_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n if_o you_o give_v a_o inch_n man_n will_v take_v a_o ell._n rather_o for_o act_n past_a we_o shall_v often_o think_v upon_o that_o expression_n of_o the_o prophet_n i_o will_v pour_v upon_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o supplication_n and_o they_o shall_v look_v to_o he_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v zach._n 12._o 10._o christ_n be_v not_o only_o pierce_v in_o a_o literal_a sense_n when_o his_o body_n be_v run_v through_o with_o a_o spear_n but_o he_o be_v pierce_v also_o when_o his_o name_n and_o headship_n be_v take_v away_o from_o he_o and_o give_v to_o another_o so_o far_o as_o a_o whole_a nation_n have_v be_v mediate_o or_o immediate_o direct_o or_o indirect_o implicate_v and_o involve_v in_o such_o a_o sin_n so_o far_o i_o believe_v they_o ought_v to_o mourn_v if_o this_o be_v not_o do_v god_n perhaps_o may_v rebuke_v we_o when_o our_o army_n go_v forth_o against_o those_o that_o worship_n the_o beast_n and_o uphold_v his_o name_n and_o headship_n in_o enmity_n to_o the_o government_n of_o christ._n though_o not_o in_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o enemy_n yet_o we_o may_v be_v chastise_v for_o our_o own_o fault_n and_o the_o lord_n may_v be_v provoke_v to_o appear_v against_o we_o when_o the_o lamb_n go_v forth_o on_o his_o white_a horse_n against_o the_o beast_n and_o his_o army_n the_o army_n that_o follow_v be_v upon_o white_a horse_n clothe_v in_o fine_a linen_n white_a and_o clean_a rev._n 19_o 14._o further_o also_o by_o the_o process_n of_o this_o discourse_n information_n may_v be_v give_v to_o certain_a in_o these_o time_n who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o mere_a show_n and_o colour_n of_o some_o passage_n in_o the_o prophecy_n do_v think_v it_o a_o part_n of_o their_o duty_n to_o level_a magistracy_n abolish_v law_n and_o to_o turn_v all_o thing_n up-side_n down_o in_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n of_o such_o i_o may_v say_v that_o they_o mingle_v the_o precious_a truth_n of_o god_n with_o fable_n of_o their_o own_o comment_n in_o the_o metamorphosis_n of_o ovid_n we_o read_v of_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n of_o the_o chaos_n of_o the_o giant_n heap_v of_o pelion_n upon_o ossa_n of_o deucalion_n flood_n of_o the_o four_o age_n of_o the_o golden_a the_o silver_n the_o brazen_a and_o the_o iron_n age._n these_o thing_n be_v not_o all_o fiction_n because_o they_o have_v some_o ground_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o scripture_n neither_o be_v they_o all_o truth_n because_o they_o be_v mingle_v with_o fiction_n of_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n be_v some_o author_n who_o be_v for_o the_o five_o monarchy_n they_o think_v that_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v the_o dissolution_n of_o all_o earthly_a kingdom_n but_o by_o the_o purport_n and_o whole_a drift_n of_o the_o present_a discourse_n they_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o government_n power_n and_o authority_n pure_o as_o such_o but_o only_o to_o government_n as_o idolatrous_a as_o tyrannical_a as_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o church_n in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n the_o empire_n of_o babel_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o lion_n of_o persia_n to_o a_o bear_n of_o greece_n to_o a_o leopard_n of_o rome_n to_o a_o beast_n of_o divers_a shape_n all_o these_o monarchy_n erect_v and_o set_v up_o on_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o davidical_a kingdom_n be_v parallel_v to_o so_o many_o beast_n bu●…_n to_o what_o beast_n shall_v we_o resemble_v in_o its_o right_a constitution_n the_o davidical_a kingdom_n itself_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n the_o angel_n do_v express_o say_v that_o there_o be_v eight_o king_n and_o yet_o the_o beast_n have_v but_o seven_o head_n chap._n 17._o how_o can_v this_o be_v i_o have_v full_o prove_v that_o the_o dynasty_a race_n and_o succession_n of_o the_o christian_a caesar_n do_v make_v the_o seven_o roman_a king_n but_o no_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n therefore_o the_o mediatori●…n_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o government_n as_o such_o neither_o be_v nor_o ever_o shall_v be_v build_v upon_o the_o ruin_n of_o government_n as_o government_n but_o upon_o the_o ruin_n of_o government_n only_o as_o tyrannical_a and_o opposite_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v no_o such_o cause_n then_o why_o solid_a and_o judicious_a man_n in_o these_o day_n shall_v set_v aside_o this_o kind_n of_o learning_n which_o be_v so_o much_o for_o the_o credit_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n and_o for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o some_o point_n if_o i_o be_o not_o mistake_v there_o be_v in_o this_o prophecy_n as_o strong_a if_o not_o strong_a proof_n then_o in_o any_o other_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o for_o example_n though_o bishop_n be_v put_v down_o the_o service-book_n take_v away_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n bring_v near_o the_o rule_n all_o this_o be_v do_v man_n be_v not_o please_v what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o difference_n the_o difficulty_n lie_v in_o the_o church-state_n robinson_n and_o other_o of_o that_o way_n do_v plead_v that_o we_o have_v no_o example_n for_o a_o national_a church_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o whole_a nation_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n this_o be_v the_o principal_a rock_n of_o offence_n i_o confess_v it_o be_v true_a that_o we_o have_v no_o example_n of_o a_o national_a church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o how_o can_v all_o nation_n come_v in_o at_o that_o particular_a instant_n when_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o do_v still_o remain_v in_o their_o idolatry_n and_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o be_v the_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o church_n now_o if_o we_o apply_v ourselves_o to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n we_o shall_v plain_o see_v how_o the_o spirit_n do_v foretell_v that_o after_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n the_o church_n shall_v fall_v under_o grievous_a persecution_n in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o pagan_a caesar_n when_o that_o time_n be_v end_v the_o empire_n itself_o shall_v become_v christian._n what_o else_o shall_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o expression_n now_o be_v come_v salvation_n and_o strength_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o christ_n rev._n 12._o 10._o this_o do_v note_v no_o other_o but_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o throne_n in_o the_o time_n of_o
constantine_n the_o great_a after_o these_o thing_n he_o show_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o ten_o king_n by_o the_o emblem_n of_o a_o beast_n with_o ten_o horn_n that_o come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o sea_n chap._n 13._o ver_fw-la 1._o this_o beast_n do_v signify_v the_o roman_a tyranny_n in_o the_o last_o and_o the_o antichristian_a edition_n and_o he_o further_o add_v in_o the_o latter_a time_n of_o this_o kingdom_n that_o the_o eternal_a gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v to_o every_o kindred_n tongue_n and_o nation_n chap._n 14._o ver_fw-la 6._o &_o 7._o then_o also_o the_o deceive_v king_n shall_v be_v undeceive_v and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n shall_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n chap._n 11._o 15._o that_o be_v those_o kingdom_n which_o former_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n shall_v become_v subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o gospel_n here_o be_v a_o plain_a example_n though_o not_o in_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o whole_a christian_a nation_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o willing_o yield_v that_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v that_o by_o and_o through_o which_o primary_o and_o immediate_o church_n be_v gather_v yet_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n the_o same_o gospel_n also_o be_v countenance_v law_n be_v make_v parish_n be_v divide_v minister_n maintain_v and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o nation_n bring_v to_o attend_v to_o that_o which_o be_v or_o at_o least_o may_v be_v the_o mean_a of_o their_o salvation_n i_o can_v think_v but_o with_o great_a horror_n what_o will_v ensue_v if_o the_o design_n of_o some_o man_n shall_v take_v place_n it_o will_v be_v the_o very_a abaddon_n and_o apollyon_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o let_v we_o look_v what_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o king_n of_o europe_n they_o shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n and_o make_v her_o desolate_a and_o naked_a and_o shall_v burn_v her_o flesh_n with_o fire_n chap._n 17._o if_o they_o shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n than_o they_o shall_v destroy_v the_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n of_o that_o church_n which_o they_o do_v former_o so_o love_v and_o admire_v and_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n they_o shall_v countenance_v the_o gospel_n bring_v in_o their_o people_n and_o do_v as_o much_o for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o do_v former_o persecute_v and_o hate_v of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n it_o be_v say_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v bring_v their_o glory_n to_o she_o chap_n 21._o but_o lest_o any_o shall_v think_v that_o this_o be_v mean_v only_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n in_o heaven_n let_v sundry_a passage_n of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n be_v consider_v the_o scope_n of_o all_o whi●…h_n be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v bring_v their_o glory_n unto_o the_o church_n there_o be_v much_o speak_v also_o of_o the_o come_n in_o of_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o king_n and_o the_o adorn_v of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o bounty_n of_o king_n read_v chap._n 60._o per_fw-la totum_fw-la with_o many_o other_o place_n if_o these_o thing_n be_v right_o consider_v man_n will_v not_o have_v such_o prejudices_fw-la against_o a_o national_a constitution_n and_o set_v up_o of_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o authority_n power_n and_o command_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n what_o shall_v we_o make_v of_o the_o reign_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o earth_n be_v it_o not_o direct_o and_o diametral_o opposite_a to_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o beast_n let_v the_o angel_n himself_o together_o with_o our_o own_o experience_n show_v wherein_o the_o formality_n and_o the_o be_v thereof_o do_v consist_v so_o he_o speak_v the_o horn_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v ten_o king_n which_o have_v receive_v no_o kingdom_n as_o yet_o but_o receive_v power_n as_o king_n one_o hour_n with_o the_o beast_n these_o have_v one_o mind_n and_o shall_v give_v their_o power_n and_o strength_n unto_o the_o beast_n these_o shall_v make_v war_n with_o the_o lamb_n but_o the_o lamb_n shall_v overcome_v they_o for_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o king_n rev._n 17._o ver_fw-la 12_o 13_o 14._o the_o effence_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n lie_v in_o the_o confederacy_n of_o king_n and_o in_o their_o yield_a themselves_o to_o the_o name_n and_o headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o be_v the_o reign_n of_o the_o beast_n upon_o the_o earth_n so_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o proportion_n the_o reign_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o lamb_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o holy_a association_n and_o concurrence_n of_o christian_a prince_n to_o set_v up_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n his_o name_n and_o headship_n as_o the_o regent-law_n among_o the_o nation_n from_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o magistrate_n nay_o it_o be_v most_o forcible_a and_o effectual_a to_o establish_v the_o law_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o same_o ground_n i_o do_v here_o desire_v to_o speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o and_o oh_o that_o i_o can_v speak_v it_o with_o tear_n the_o reformation_n in_o germany_n and_o now_o late_o in_o england_n have_v be_v and_o yet_o be_v much_o deform_v by_o abalienation_n of_o the_o church_n revenue_n and_o in_o pass_v away_o that_o which_o former_a age_n have_v bestow_v i_o may_v speak_v of_o a_o great_a part_n at_o least_o upon_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n these_o be_v scandal_n to_o the_o enemy_n let_v our_o conscience_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n judge_n whether_o this_o be_v not_o a_o scandal_n give_v rather_o than_o a_o scandal_n take_v whether_o we_o do_v not_o open_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o reformation_n and_o whether_o we_o be_v not_o faulty_a in_o this_o point_n moses_n go_v in_o god_n way_n and_o by_o his_o command_n and_o it_o be_v a_o glorious_a work_n to_o deliver_v israel_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o egypt_n yet_o withal_o when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o discharge_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o work_n than_o the_o lord_n stand_v in_o the_o way_n to_o kill_v he_o exod._n 4._o 24._o our_o army_n be_v go_v forth_o against_o the_o enemy_n and_o the_o prote●…ant_a army_n be_v like_a to_o go_v forth_o more_o and_o more_o these_o be_v the_o time_n or_o at_o least_o do_v border_n upon_o the_o time_n of_o the_o su●…per_n of_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o great_a vintage_n of_o th●…_n bat●…el_n of_o armageddon_n there_o be_v like_a to_o be_v great_a commotion_n of_o state_n army_n against_o army_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n and_o therefore_o by_o collation_n of_o all_o circumstance_n we_o can_v be_v fat_a off_o from_o the_o performance_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v foretell_v it_o be_v meet_v for_o we_o to_o see_v our_o own_o sin_n and_o special_o that_o which_o i_o have_v hint_v before_o we_o go_v on_o in_o the_o lord_n work_v these_o thing_n i_o have_v think_v good_a to_o annex_v by_o way_n of_o appendi●…_n my_o purpose_n be_v not_o to_o speak_v any_o thing_n to_o please_v or_o di●…please_v any_o party_n neither_o can_v i_o tell_v how_o any_o party_n will_v be_v please_v with_o i_o it_o may_v be_v i_o may_v displease_v all_o however_o i_o do_v desire_n to_o please_v my_o own_o conscience_n in_o deliver_v that_o which_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v a_o truth_n of_o god_n there_o be_v one_o thing_n whi●…h_v i_o think_v meet_v more_o ●…ully_o to_o explain_v myself_o in_o i_o have_v in_o the_o precede_a treatise_n make_v it_o a_o good_a part_n of_o my_o work_n to_o prove_v the_o roman_a to_o be_v the_o four_o and_o the_o last_o metal_n kingdom_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a do_v begin_v in_o the_o consideration_n and_o notion_n of_o such_o a_o kingdom_n when_o the_o church_n and_o the_o con●…inent_a of_o the_o church_n come_v under_o the_o dominion_n and_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n this_o i_o know_v the_o follower_n of_o junius_n will_v not_o away_o with_o and_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o these_o time_n do_v follow_v this_o way_n of_o interpretation_n but_o because_o we_o will_v not_o unnecessary_o controvert_v and_o make_v ourselves_o more_o enemy_n than_o needs_o we_o will_v be_v content_a to_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a do_v begin_v at_o the_o end_n or_o end_n of_o all_o four_o metal-kingdome_n and_o where_o they_o end_v in_o the_o method_n order_n and_o way_n of_o account_n the_o roman_a do_v begin_v and_o whereas_o we_o have_v endeavour_v chap._n 6._o pag._n 116._o to_o prove_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdome_n to_o be_v at_o that_o instant_n of_o time_n when_o the_o church_n come_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o that_o people_n the_o same_o argument_n mutatis_fw-la mutandis_fw-la will_v prove_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a at_o the_o end_n of_o all_o four_o metal-kingdome_n and_o so_o the_o follower_n of_o junius_n and_o we_o shall_v agree_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o interpretation_n let_v we_o compute_v the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o decree_v and_o enact_v under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n and_o in_o that_o series_n and_o way_n of_o account_n it_o will_v be_v 666_o year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o that_o great_a empire_n do_v succeed_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o four_o metal-kingdome_n here_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o calculation_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o a_o man_n according_a to_o the_o division_n and_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o man_n in_o daniel_n image_n if_o we_o go_v either_o way_n the_o account_n will_v be_v make_v good_a finis_fw-la hier._n in_o levit._n quot_fw-la verba_fw-la tot_fw-la mysteria_fw-la quot_fw-la syllaba_fw-la tot_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d iren._n lib._n 2._o c._n 39_o l._n 3._o c._n 3._o ●…us_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 23._o epiph._n haeres_fw-la 51._o rev._n 16._o act_n 1._o 7._o 7._o in_o his_o treatise_n concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o earth_n note_n note_n note_n note_n *_o and_o beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o josephus_n dio_n the_o historian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d jew_n 〈◊〉_d tax●…d_v by_o gabinius_n 〈◊〉_d 3●…_n note_n
reproof_n and_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n i_o shall_v do_v it_o the_o rather_o because_o many_o in_o these_o time_n be_v preoccupate_v with_o prejudice_n paraeus_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o revelation_n and_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o work_n have_v these_o word_n apocalypsin_fw-la interpretari_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la nodos_fw-la aenigmatum_fw-la omnium_fw-la solvere_fw-la apices_fw-la omnes_fw-la a●…u_fw-la fodere_fw-la nihil_fw-la omnino_fw-la ignorare_fw-la vel_fw-la quid_fw-la imago_fw-la quid_fw-la character_n quid_fw-la numerus_fw-la nominis_fw-la bestiae_fw-la quid_fw-la bestia_fw-la ipsa_fw-la etc._n etc._n by_o this_o it_o be_v evident_a what_o the_o forename_a interpreter_n do_v judge_n concern_v these_o point_n to_o wit_n the_o beast_n the_o name_n the_o mark_n &_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n he_o take_v they_o to_o be_v but_o punctilio_n and_o nicety_n in_o this_o kind_n of_o learning_n but_o save_v the_o great_a worth_n of_o so_o judicious_a a_o author_n i_o shall_v now_o endeavour_v to_o make_v good_a the_o contradictory_n to_o his_o assertion_n and_o shall_v prove_v these_o to_o be_v point_n very_o momentous_a and_o much_o conduce_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o whole_a prophecy_n first_o if_o you_o take_v the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n in_o the_o main_a scope_n it_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n carry_v on_o in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o beginning_n and_o continuance_n of_o that_o kingdom_n as_o it_o stand_v in_o diametral_a opposition_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o of_o his_o saint_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o send_v his_o angel_n of_o ●…et_a purpose_n to_o sig●…e_v to_o the_o church_n thing_n that_o must_v short_o come_v to_o pass_v ●…endeth_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o prophetical_a narration_n in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n and_o in_o the_o delineation_n of_o the_o name_n mark_v and_o number_n the_o essential_a badge_n and_o character_n of_o the_o kingdom_n therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o matter_n very_o behooveful_a to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o other_o part_n of_o the_o prophecy_n to_o define_v in_o the_o beginning_n what_o be_v signify_v under_o these_o em●…ems_n or_o typical_a expression_n second_o the_o holy_a spirit_n speak_v of_o the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n 〈◊〉_d name_n mark_v and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o i●…_n give_v worship_n to_o the_o image_n and_o in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mark_n the_o great_a sin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v consist_v in_o these_o latter_a time_n chap._n 13._o vers_fw-la 11_o 12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16._o now_o than_o if_o the_o great_a sin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v primary_o and_o chief_o consist_v in_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v a_o most_o material_a point_n to_o find_v out_o what_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v mean_a by_o these_o symbolical_a and_o figurative_a expression_n i_o can_v mourn_v for_o a_o sin_n private_o in_o heart_n neither_o can_v i_o public_o reprove_v it_o in_o other_o but_o i_o must_v first_o know_v what_o the_o sin_n be_v but_o that_o this_o idolatry_n may_v more_o full_o appear_v let_v we_o amplify_v it_o by_o two_o circumstance_n first_o by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o place_n where_o and_o how_o far_o it_o have_v be_v use_v and_o here_o it_o be_v plain_a in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o beast_n none_o may_v buy_v nor_o sell_v but_o he_o that_o worship_v the_o image_n and_o receive_v the_o mark_n he_o cause_v all_o both_o small_a and_o great_a rich_a and_o poor_a free_a and_o bond_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o law_n if_o you_o look_v to_o the_o latitude_n of_o the_o dominion_n the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o a_o very_a large_a and_o ample_a dominion_n that_o the_o beast_n have_v for_o the_o nation_n be_v deceive_v chap._n 20._o vers_fw-la 3._o all_o the_o world_n worship_v the_o beast_n chap._n 13._o vers_fw-la 8._o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v also_o agree_v to_o give_v their_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n chap._n 17._o vers_fw-la 17._o therefore_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o beast_n must_v be_v very_o great_a and_o by_o consequent_a the_o sin_n must_v be_v a_o ecumenical_a sin_n practise_v in_o all_o the_o part_n and_o precinct_n of_o so_o large_a a_o dominion_n see_v also_o it_o be_v not_o the_o sin_n of_o one_o particular_a nation_n city_n or_o church_n but_o in_o a_o manner_n the_o general_a and_o the_o common_a apostasy_n of_o the_o time_n therefore_o it_o be_v of_o great_a moment_n to_o be_v consider_v the_o sin_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la be_v much_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n of_o departure_n from_o the_o true_a god_n and_o that_o it_o continue_v long_o after_o his_o death_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o it_o be_v only_o practise_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o ten_o tri●…es_n so_o long_o as_o they_o continue_v a_o kingdom_n but_o now_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o receive_n of_o his_o mark_n have_v overspread_v all_o nation_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n only_o there_o have_v be_v some_o faithful_a witness_n which_o have_v stand_v for_o the_o truth_n and_o have_v be_v slay_v for_o the_o testimony_n sake_n second_o for_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n how_o long_o shall_v it_o be_v that_o man_n must_v worship_v the_o beast_n and_o receive_v his_o mark_n this_o must_v be_v in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o second_o beast_n for_o though_o i_o do_v not_o full_o agree_v with_o mr_n mede_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o i_o shall_v afterward_o deliver_v that_o the_o ten-horned_a &_o the_o two-horned_a beast_n be_v exact_a contemporary_n in_o all_o their_o time_n yet_o in_o substance_n and_o in_o the_o main_a they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o equal_a continuance_n the_o time_n of_o the_o ten-horned_a beast_n be_v 42_o month_n or_o 1260_o prophetical_a day_n or_o ordinary_a year_n so_o then_o some_o small_a proportion_n be_v deduct_v this_o period_n will_v be_v the_o time_n also_o of_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n and_o of_o the_o world_n receive_v the_o mark_n and_o the_o image_n which_o he_o make_v therefore_o see_v this_o sin_n shall_v continue_v many_o age_n together_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o make_v the_o more_o diligent_a search_n into_o the_o matter_n nabuchadnezzar_n set_v up_o a_o great_a image_n as_o the_o type_n of_o the_o babylonian_a majesty_n he_o cause_v all_o the_o state_n of_o that_o empire_n to_o come_v together_o to_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o image_n he_o command_v they_o all_o under_o pain_n of_o death_n to_o fall_v down_o before_o it_o he_o have_v a_o note_n of_o distinction_n also_o to_o discern_v between_o the_o worshipper_n of_o the_o image_n and_o those_o that_o refuse_v that_o worship_n yet_o all_o this_o be_v do_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o instant_n of_o time_n but_o for_o the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n set_v up_o in_o honour_n of_o the_o roman_a majesty_n this_o have_v continue_v many_o age_n here_o all_o nation_n language_n and_o people_n be_v require_v to_o worship_n here_o be_v a_o penalty_n lay_v upon_o all_o that_o shall_v refuse_v to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o command_n and_o here_o be_v a_o mark_n to_o distinguish_v between_o those_o that_o be_v the_o beast_n and_o those_o that_o be_v none_o of_o he_o these_o tyrannical_a and_o idolatrous_a practice_n have_v continue_v by_o the_o fore-appointment_n and_o counsel_n of_o god_n for_o many_o generation_n therefore_o consider_v the_o largeness_n of_o the_o place_n and_o the_o long_a continuance_n of_o the_o time_n that_o the_o world_n have_v sin_v and_o do_v yet_o continue_v sin_v against_o christ_n in_o these_o very_a thing_n we_o may_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v no_o nice_a curiosity_n to_o find_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o beast_n his_o name_n mark_v and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n three_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o grievous_a judgement_n of_o god_n denounce_v against_o all_o those_o that_o worship_v the_o beast_n his_o image_n and_o receive_v his_o mark_n in_o their_o forehead_n and_o their_o right_a hand_n that_o they_o shall_v drink_v of_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n which_o be_v pour_v out_o without_o mixture_n in_o the_o cup_n of_o his_o indignation_n also_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v torment_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o of_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o smoke_n of_o their_o burn_a shall_v ascend_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o chap._n 14._o vers_fw-la 9_o 10_o 11._o the_o learned_a grasserus_n right_o observe_v that_o in_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v nowhere_o a_o more_o terrible_a judgement_n threaten_v than_o that_o which_o be_v here_o denounce_v against_o the_o man_n that_o worship_v the_o beast_n and_o receive_v his_o mark._n and_o shall_v
we_o account_v it_o but_o a_o curiosity_n to_o find_v out_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n in_o these_o thing_n in_o which_o also_o the_o precious_a soul_n of_o many_o thousand_o be_v so_o deep_o hazard_v and_o that_o for_o ever_o to_o their_o eternal_a perdition_n if_o they_o repent_v not_o our_o saviour_n foreseeing_a the_o great_a calamity_n that_o shall_v befall_v the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n at_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v great_a tenderness_n of_o heart_n towards_o they_o at_o the_o instant_n of_o his_o suffer_v he_o say_v daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n weep_v not_o for_o i_o but_o weep_v for_o yourselves_o and_o for_o your_o child_n for_o the_o day_n be_v come_v in_o which_o they_o shall_v say_v bless_a be_v the_o barren_a that_o do_v not_o bear_v and_o the_o pap_n that_o never_o give_v suck_v luk._n 23._o 28_o 29_o 30._o even_o so_o at_o this_o present_a day_n though_o the_o friend_n and_o follower_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o great_a enemy_n that_o we_o have_v yet_o nevertheless_o have_v we_o the_o heart_n of_o christ_n and_o do_v we_o see_v the_o greatness_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o the_o grievousness_n of_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v we_o will_v have_v tender_a affection_n towards_o they_o we_o will_v mourn_v over_o they_o with_o many_o tear_n but_o how_o shall_v we_o do_v this_o if_o we_o ourselves_o do_v not_o understand_v what_o this_o sin_n be_v and_o what_o judgement_n the_o lord_n will_v bring_v upon_o they_o for_o these_o thing_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o idle_a speculation_n to_o meditate_v on_o this_o subject_n which_o concern_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o great_a judgement_n of_o god_n because_o of_o the_o sin_n four_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o special_a cause_n of_o the_o martyrdom_n and_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v special_o for_o these_o thing_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n and_o edict_n be_v make_v that_o all_o who_o will_v not_o worship_v the_o image_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n chap._n 13._o vers_fw-la 15._o the_o victory_n of_o the_o saint_n also_o that_o stand_v upon_o the_o glassy_a sea_n mingle_v with_o fire_n be_v of_o they_o that_o have_v overcome_v the_o beast_n his_o image_n mark_v name_n and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n chap._n 15._o v._n 2_o 3._o at_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o thousand_o year_n also_o those_o soul_n sa●…e_v upon_o throne_n and_o judgement_n be_v give_v to_o they_o that_o be_v behead_v for_o the_o witness_n of_o jesus_n and_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o have_v not_o worship_v the_o beast_n nor_o receive_v his_o mark._n we_o may_v conclude_v then_o that_o these_o be_v the_o special_a cause_n of_o the_o martyr_n suffering_n in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n and_o be_v the_o eminent_a object_n of_o their_o victory_n and_o crown_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o kingdom_n now_o shall_v we_o think_v the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o nice_a speculation_n i_o think_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o serious_o to_o be_v think_v of_o and_o i_o believe_v also_o that_o it_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o shall_v so_o judge_v of_o the_o matter_n five_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o object_n of_o the_o vial_n upon_o what_o kind_n of_o person_n they_o be_v pour_v out_o they_o be_v pour_v out_o upon_o a_o people_n that_o be_v distinguish_v by_o such_o badge_n and_o cognisance_n as_o these_o that_o have_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o worship_v his_o image_n chap._n 16._o vers_fw-la 1_o 2_o 10_o 13._o now_o then_o if_o we_o will_v know_v what_o the_o vial_n be_v and_o wherein_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n do_v appear_v in_o his_o pour_v forth_o of_o they_o in_o these_o time_n for_o these_o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o vial_n it_o will_v be_v a_o point_n very_o necessary_a and_o material_a to_o the_o open_n of_o this_o doctrine_n to_o show_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o mark_n of_o his_o name_n for_o the_o vial_n full_a of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n have_v their_o several_a and_o respective_a operation_n upon_o these_o kind_n of_o man_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o light_a curiosity_n to_o discover_v what_o these_o thing_n be_v and_o what_o kind_n of_o person_n be_v decipher_v and_o set_v forth_o under_o these_o character_n six_o consider_v the_o promise_n that_o be_v make_v to_o the_o church_n that_o after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n than_o the_o dragon_n shall_v deceive_v the_o nation_n no_o more_o chap._n 20._o v._n 3._o that_o wherein_o the_o nation_n have_v be_v deceive_v in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n be_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o worship_v the_o beast_n in_o adore_v his_o image_n and_o in_o receive_v his_o mark_n as_o may_v appear_v chap._n 13._o v._n 13_o 14._o chap._n 20._o v._n 3._o further_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n do_v deceive_v they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o those_o miracle_n he_o have_v power_n to_o do_v here_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o this_o deceive_a of_o the_o nation_n be_v only_o at_o that_o instant_n but_o he_o have_v deceive_v they_o and_o do_v deceive_v they_o and_o will_v deceive_v they_o in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o it_o be_v particular_o say_v of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o wit_n the_o delude_a king_n that_o they_o shall_v agree_v to_o give_v their_o kingdom_n to_o the_o beast_n till_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v when_o those_o time_n be_v once_o fulfil_v the_o dragon_n shall_v deceive_v the_o nation_n no_o more_o for_o though_o he_o and_o the_o beast_n be_v two_o yet_o in_o this_o business_n they_o be_v but_o one_o the_o dragon_n deceive_v the_o nation_n by_o the_o beast_n the_o beast_n be_v the_o dragon_n vicegerent_n in_o deceive_v the_o nation_n when_o the_o beast_n be_v destroy_v the_o dragon_n also_o shall_v be_v bind_v up_o that_o he_o shall_v deceive_v the_o nation_n no_o more_o if_o we_o descend_v to_o particular_n and_o inquire_v wherein_o the_o nation_n have_v be_v deceive_v the_o whole_a scope_n of_o the_o prophecy_n do_v direct_v we_o to_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o to_o the_o receive_n of_o his_o mark._n it_o be_v no_o frivolous_a study_n then_o to_o dive_v into_o the_o sense_n and_o to_o search_v into_o the_o mean_v of_o these_o thing_n see_v they_o be_v the_o subject-matter_n of_o such_o a_o universal_a delusion_n and_o who_o can_v tell_v when_o these_o thing_n shall_v come_v to_o be_v more_o clear_o know_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o they_o which_o have_v be_v former_o seduce_v when_o they_o shall_v come_v also_o more_o perfect_o and_o full_o to_o know_v what_o the_o spirit_n mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n his_o mark_n and_o image_n and_o how_o they_o have_v great_o sin_v against_o christ_n in_o yield_v to_o these_o thing_n who_o can_v tell_v what_o a_o mean_a this_o may_v be_v of_o their_o undeceive_n we_o may_v probable_o suppose_v that_o the_o state_n and_o government_n of_o this_o world_n may_v more_o easy_o be_v bring_v off_o from_o their_o subjection_n to_o the_o beast_n when_o we_o shall_v define_v the_o true_a natural_a meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o lay_v the_o definition_n before_o the_o conscience_n in_o the_o great_a controversy_n betwixt_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o other_o state_n it_o be_v remarkable_a what_o the_o champion_n of_o that_o church_n do_v usual_o propound_v they_o speak_v much_o of_o the_o stability_n of_o that_o seat_n ground_v upon_o the_o promise_n tue_fw-la petrus_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o very_a deed_n if_o we_o look_v to_o experience_n how_o many_o kingdom_n how_o many_o church_n in_o the_o east_n and_o in_o the_o west_n have_v total_o perish_v and_o have_v come_v to_o nothing_o when_o that_o church_n and_o see_v have_v continue_v in_o the_o great_a glory_n and_o that_o for_o many_o age_n now_o this_o be_v lay_v as_o a_o foundation_n be_v not_o here_o great_a reason_n allege_v to_o the_o conscience_n that_o the_o state_n of_o christendom_n shall_v yet_o continue_v their_o obedience_n to_o the_o catholic_n apostolic_a roman_a see_n as_o they_o call_v it_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o authority_n have_v be_v wondrous_o and_o miraculos_o preserve_v in_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o change_n of_o time_n and_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o do_v open_o confess_v that_o to_o i_o it_o be_v a_o great_a wonder_n to_o see_v a_o state_n o●…_n government_n to_o continue_v so_o many_o age_n and_o yet_o to_o abide_v one_o and_o the_o same_o still_o but_o when_o i_o read_v the_o scripture_n i_o find_v that_o the_o
the_o great_a sin_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o many_o age_n have_v be_v in_o worship_v the_o image_n and_o receive_v the_o mark._n three_o the_o grievous_a judgement_n of_o god_n denounce_v against_o man_n for_o these_o thing_n four_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o martyr_n suffering_n because_o they_o will_v not_o worship_v the_o beast_n nor_o receive_v his_o mark._n five_o the_o object_n of_o the_o vial_n they_o be_v pour_v out_o upon_o a_o people_n distinguish_v by_o these_o character_n six_o the_o deceive_a of_o the_o nation_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o his_o image_n seven_o the_o reign_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o earth_n which_o will_v be_v the_o more_o demonstrative_o understand_v by_o the_o right_n state_v of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o beast_n ●…ver_o those_o that_o worship_v the_o image_n and_o receive_v the_o mark_n all_o these_o consideration_n lay_v together_o plain_o show_v the_o use_n and_o profitableness_n of_o the_o discovery_n now_o let_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o point_n to_o the_o possibility_n thereof_o chap._n ii_o concern_v the_o possibility_n of_o the_o discovery_n and_o how_o that_o there_o be_v certain_a demonstrative_a principle_n to_o bring_v the_o truth_n to_o light_v there_o be_v now_o live_v in_o these_o time_n many_o who_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o meddle_v with_o this_o prophecy_n especial_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n but_o i_o will_v entreat_v all_o such_o serious_o to_o ponder_v in_o their_o own_o heart_n whether_o by_o this_o opinion_n of_o they_o they_o do_v not_o secret_o accuse_v the_o lord_n christ_n either_o for_o want_v of_o truth_n or_o want_v of_o wisdom_n for_o what_o man_n of_o truth_n will_v call_v that_o a_o revelation_n which_o be_v no_o revelation_n at_o all_o and_o what_o man_n of_o wisdom_n will_v say_v bless_a be_v he_o that_o read_v and_o keep_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n when_o there_o be_v no_o possibility_n to_o read_v it_o so_o as_o to_o understand_v and_o particular_o shall_v the_o lord_n jesus_n give_v serious_a warning_n to_o his_o church_n and_o people_n shall_v he_o show_v they_o so_o long_o beforehand_o the_o great_a sin_n of_o the_o world_n which_o shall_v consist_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o in_o receive_v of_o his_o mark_n and_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o shall_v it_o be_v presumption_n to_o show_v what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n in_o these_o thing_n to_o what_o end_n be_v they_o reveal_v if_o there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o the_o revelation_n at_o all_o and_o there_o be_v no_o use_n if_o it_o be_v so_o difficult_a that_o it_o can_v possible_o be_v understand_v it_o be_v a_o special_a part_n of_o love_n in_o christ_n to_o send_v and_o signify_v to_o his_o servant_n thing_n that_o must_v come_v short_o to_o pass_v but_o what_o part_n of_o love_n be_v it_o to_o signify_v it_o in_o that_o manner_n that_o they_o can_v possible_o understand_v what_o he_o mean_v you_o will_v say_v it_o be_v reveal_v to_o some_o select_a one_o i_o grant_v that_o some_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n have_v a_o peculiar_a gift_n to_o understand_v the_o typical_a expression_n in_o this_o prophecy_n as_o every_o member_n in_o the_o church_n have_v his_o peculiar_a gift_n dispense_v to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o lay_v out_o their_o talon_n this_o way_n for_o the_o common_a good_a but_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o they_o that_o account_v it_o curiosity_n in_o any_o whosoever_o to_o meddle_v with_o these_o study_n and_o be_v absolute_o for_o the_o conceal_n of_o these_o thing_n from_o the_o people_n but_o if_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o experience_n show_v how_o they_o have_v be_v deceive_v who_o have_v bestow_v their_o pain_n in_o this_o kind_n of_o study_n i_o answer_v the_o same_o experience_n plain_o show_v that_o they_o who_o have_v come_v with_o a_o sincere_a mind_n to_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n to_o study_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o prophecy_n to_o compare_v time_n with_o time_n vision_z with_o vision_z and_o the_o prophecy_n with_o the_o story_n have_v have_v a_o good_a return_n of_o their_o labour_n i_o may_v say_v without_o prejudice_n to_o those_o that_o go_v before_o that_o bullinger_n in_o his_o time_n brightman_n in_o his_o time_n grasserus_n in_o his_o time_n mede_n in_o his_o time_n each_o of_o these_o have_v make_v their_o several_a and_o respective_a addition_n to_o the_o clear_n of_o the_o prophecy_n if_o we_o endeavour_v to_o carry_v on_o the_o work_n where_o they_o leave_v it_o at_o least_o with_o the_o same_o industry_n and_o fidelity_n we_o may_v by_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o bring_v those_o mystery_n to_o light_n that_o be_v not_o discern_v in_o former_a age_n and_o for_o my_o part_n i_o do_v firm_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v not_o cease_v to_o raise_v up_o such_o in_o the_o time_n follow_v as_o shall_v clear_v the_o thing_n that_o have_v lie_v dark_a in_o the_o prophecy_n and_o do_v yet_o remain_v hide_v to_o we_o but_o for_o the_o present_a because_o many_o think_v that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n be_v unsearchable_a mystery_n let_v i_o lay_v down_o some_o reason_n to_o prove_v the_o possibility_n and_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o discovery_n first_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n be_v the_o essential_a character_n of_o a_o state_n or_o government_n obvious_a to_o the_o view_n of_o man_n it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o write_n of_o s._n paul_n that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n in_o they_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v 2_o pet._n 3._o 16._o there_o may_v be_v good_a reason_n give_v for_o this_o to_o wit_n the_o sublimity_n and_o the_o spiritualness_n of_o the_o matter_n for_o a_o natural_a man_n that_o have_v no_o experience_n in_o his_o own_o heart_n how_o can_v he_o judge_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lead_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o put_n off_o of_o the_o old_a man_n and_o the_o put_v on_o of_o the_o new_a when_o a_o man_n have_v no_o experience_n how_o can_v he_o understand_v these_o thing_n that_o be_v so_o large_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n now_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o his_o mark_n these_o be_v the_o badge_n of_o a_o government_n obvious_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o man_n if_o there_o be_v any_o difficulty_n it_o lie_v only_o in_o the_o typical_a and_o figurative_a way_n of_o expression_n second_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n be_v the_o essential_a character_n of_o a_o state_n or_o government_n which_o the_o church_n have_v have_v long_a experience_n of_o for_o many_o age_n for_o the_o monarchical_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o shall_v be_v over_o jew_n and_o gentile_n in_o the_o latter_a time_n though_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n concern_v this_o dominion_n yet_o there_o be_v sundry_a passage_n hard_o to_o be_v determine_v because_o the_o event_n have_v not_o yet_o show_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o prophecy_n now_o there_o be_v nothing_o want_v so_o far_o as_o it_o concern_v the_o event_n to_o make_v know_v to_o the_o church_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n three_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n be_v such_o character_n that_o the_o church_n in_o be_v have_v the_o present_a experience_n of_o many_o thing_n be_v dark_a in_o the_o old_a prophet_n because_o the_o story_n of_o those_o time_n be_v lose_v to_o we_o the_o jew_n can_v better_a understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o some_o prophecy_n than_o we_o can_v and_o i_o believe_v the_o great_a knot_n in_o expound_v the_o 70_o week_n of_o daniel_n lie_v principal_o in_o this_o to_o show_v precise_o and_o determinate_o where_o that_o number_n of_o time_n do_v begin_v there_o be_v a_o excellent_a agreement_n between_o the_o greek_a historian_n about_o the_o respective_a time_n of_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n but_o the_o knot_n lie_v in_o this_o right_o to_o determine_v who_o that_o darius_n be_v in_o who_o time_n the_o temple_n be_v build_v and_o the_o city_n repair_v this_o thing_n be_v better_o know_v to_o the_o ancient_a jew_n than_o it_o be_v to_o we_o but_o now_o for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o mark_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a reason_n of_o darkness_n in_o these_o because_o they_o
of_o its_o head_n etc._n etc._n now_o then_o let_v we_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a majesty_n revive_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a that_o this_o be_v the_o image_n how_o shall_v the_o name_n lateinos_n or_o any_o other_o such_o like_a name_n consist_v mere_o of_o letter_n and_o syllable_n be_v answerable_a to_o such_o a_o image_n as_o this_o what_o equipage_n or_o correspondence_n can_v there_o be_v between_o quid_fw-la nominis_fw-la &_o quid_fw-la rei_fw-la shall_v we_o once_o imagine_v that_o the_o repair_n of_o the_o roman_a majesty_n in_o these_o latter_a time_n be_v only_o of_o a_o name_n that_o consist_v of_o letter_n and_o syllable_n and_o such_o like_a element_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n alphabet_n away_o with_o such_o a_o conceit_n but_o if_o you_o take_v the_o name_n for_o the_o universal_a headship_n you_o shall_v have_v a_o name_n true_o correspondent_a to_o the_o image_n and_o to_o the_o mark._n for_o when_o the_o decree_n go_v forth_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v universal_a head_n of_o the_o church_n than_o be_v the_o ancient_a roman_a sovereignty_n repair_v in_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v former_o lose_v in_o the_o caesar_n here_o both_o the_o name_n and_o the_o image_n be_v equivalent_a each_o to_o other_o and_o do_v differ_v only_o in_o a_o certain_a consideration_n and_o the_o mark_v also_o agree_v with_o both_o the_o former_a see_v it_o be_v but_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o subjection_n to_o that_o name_n or_o power_n the_o four_o argument_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o antithesis_fw-la or_o contraposition_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lamb_n to_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n by_o the_o description_n of_o one_o opposite_a we_o may_v find_v out_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o other_o for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lamb_n it_o be_v describe_v revelation_n chap._n 19_o vers_fw-la 16._o he_o have_v on_o his_o vesture_n and_o on_o his_o thigh_n a_o name_n write_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n here_o then_o in_o this_o scripture_n we_o do_v not_o look_v after_o a_o literal_a name_n but_o after_o his_o power_n or_o sovereignty_n as_o he_o be_v lord_n or_o head_n of_o the_o church_n we_o read_v also_o phil._n 2._o 9_o because_o he_o humble_v himself_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n god_n high_o exalt_v he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o name_n above_o every_o name_n that_o at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o k●…ee_n shall_v bow_v etc._n etc._n here_o many_o in_o dark_a time_n have_v take_v this_o for_o a_o literal_a name_n and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v a_o great_a use_n to_o bow_v the_o knee_n when_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n be_v mention_v but_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o mistake_n be_v this_o they_o have_v not_o look_v to_o the_o main_a scope_n of_o the_o text_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o expression_n for_o the_o name_n in_o the_o text_n be_v not_o the_o word_n jesus_n consist_v of_o letter_n and_o syllable_n but_o the_o sublime_a power_n authority_n headship_n dominion_n and_o sovereign_a rule_n that_o god_n the_o father_n do_v give_v to_o his_o son_n after_o the_o suffering_n of_o death_n and_o this_o be_v so_o expound_v by_o the_o apostle_n himself_o in_o another_o place_n which_o he_o wrought_v in_o christ_n when_o he_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o set_v he_o at_o his_o own_o right_a hand_n in_o heavenly_a place_n far_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o may_v and_o dominion_n and_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v not_o only_o in_o this_o world_n but_o in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o have_v put_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n and_o give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n eph._n 1._o 20_o 21_o 22._o therefore_o the_o name_n be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o sovereign_a power_n that_o god_n the_o father_n do_v give_v to_o his_o son_n the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o contrary_n then_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n must_v needs_o be_v his_o universal_a power_n and_o headship_n see_v in_o all_o respect_v he_o be_v emulous_a of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o lamb._n by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o one_o we_o may_v understand_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o other_o contrary_n if_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v his_o sovereign_a dominion_n king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n ex_fw-la adverso_fw-la on_o the_o other_o part_n must_v be_v his_o universal_a headship_n over_o all_o lord_n and_o king_n and_o earthly_a dominion_n the_o five_o argument_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o parallel_n and_o resemblance_n with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whore_n it_o be_v a_o good_a observation_n of_o some_o modern_a interpreter_n that_o the_o state_n or_o government_n describe_v chap._n 13._o under_o the_o type_n and_o similitude_n of_o a_o beast_n with_o two_o horn_n be_v again_o more_o large_o repeat_v under_o the_o resemblance_n of_o a_o woman_n ride_v upon_o a_o scarlet-coloured_n beast_n r●…v_n 17._o now_o see_v there_o be_v such_o a_o parallel_n between_o the_o description_n in_o both_o chapter_n as_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o matter_n let_v we_o then_o more_o diligent_o consider_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o woman_n upon_o her_o forehead_n be_v a_o name_n write_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n vers_fw-la 5._o here_o i_o think_v none_o will_v be_v so_o void_a of_o judgement_n as_o to_o look_v after_o a_o literal_a name_n and_o a_o literal_a inscription_n in_o the_o forehead_n of_o the_o woman_n the_o name_n be_v no_o other_o but_o that_o universal_a maternity_n or_o motherhood_n as_o i_o may_v so_o say_v of_o she_o that_o profess_v herself_o the_o head_n or_o mother-church_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o be_v indeed_o and_o in_o truth_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o the_o abomination_n and_o idolatry_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o like_a manner_n when_o we_o read_v of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v after_o a_o literal_a name_n as_o lateinos_n and_o the_o like_a but_o his_o nam●…_n must_v be_v his_o universal_a paternity_n fatherhood_n power_n and_o dominion_n by_o the_o analogy_n of_o one_o expression_n we_o may_v ●…e_v out_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o other_o if_o the_o name_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n be_v not_o a_o literal_a and_o syllabical_a name_n but_o in_o the_o figure_n do_v only_o denote_v her_o general_a motherhood_n so_o proportionable_o the_o n●…_n o●…_n the_o beast_n be_v not_o a_o literal_a name_n but_o in_o the_o trope_n i●…●…oth_v only_o signify_v his_o universal_a dominion_n and_o authority_n if_o we_o transfer_v matter_n to_o experience_n we_o shall_v find_v the_o eve●…_n of_o thing_n do_v full_o answer_v these_o character_n of_o the_o prop●…ecie_n it_o have_v be_v a_o general_a receive_v maxim_n in_o many_o age_n together_o that_o out_o of_o our_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o they_o call_v it_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n to_o be_v have_v she_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o true_a catholic_n with_o they_o that_o be_v her_o admirer_n but_o in_o the_o scripture-language_n she_o be_v call_v babylon_n the_o great_a the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o it_o have_v be_v as_o general_o receive_v that_o all_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n but_o this_o in_o the_o scripture-language_n be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o name_n i_o think_v it_o be_v not_o do_v without_o the_o special_a wisdom_n and_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n that_o these_o two_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o christian_a world_n shall_v err_v so_o great_o shall_v be_v set_v forth_o with_o such_o remarkable_a character_n to_o draw_v the_o admiration_n of_o all_o that_o read_v but_o leave_v these_o thing_n for_o a_o deep_o inquire_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o my_o present_a purpose_n to_o note_v that_o the_o name_n of_o mystical_a babylon_n be_v not_o a_o literal_a name_n but_o the_o general_a motherhood_n of_o that_o city_n and_o church_n so_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n by_o way_n of_o parallel_n be_v not_o a_o literal_a name_n but_o it_o be_v the_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o beast_n as_o lord_n and_o potenta●…e_n the_o six_o argument_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o ground_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o imperial_a edict_n chap._n 13._o vers_fw-la 16_o 17._o he_o cause_v all_o both_o small_a and_o great_a bond_n and_o free_a to_o receive_v a_o mark_n in_o their_o forehead_n and_o their_o right_a hand_n and_o that_o none_o may_v buy_v nor_o sell_v but_o he_o that_o have_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o name_n now_o then_o if_o the_o name_n be_v a_o title_n or_o
appellation_n that_o consist_v only_o of_o letter_n and_o syllable_n how_o will_v this_o redound_v to_o the_o benefit_n or_o perfection_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n if_o man_n of_o all_o degree_n and_o order_n shall_v receive_v a_o name_n mere_o consist_v of_o numeral_a letter_n and_o suchlike_a trifle_n but_o if_o you_o take_v the_o name_n for_o the_o sovereign_a power_n and_o headship_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o rational_a and_o common_a than_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n to_o make_v law_n that_o all_o shall_v live_v in_o subjection_n to_o their_o power_n and_o authority_n and_o experience_v plain_o show_v that_o in_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n strict_a law_n have_v be_v make_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o catholic_n apostolic_a roman_a see_n as_o they_o call_v it_o and_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o decree_v make_v by_o that_o authority_n than_o there_o have_v be_v for_o the_o support_n and_o defence_n of_o their_o own_o community_n among_o many_o take_v this_o one_o instance_n of_o the_o statute_n exit_fw-la officio_fw-la make_v here_o in_o england_n in_o the_o time_n of_o hen._n 4._o in_o which_o statute_n it_o be_v provide_v that_o all_o they_o shall_v be_v burn_v public_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n that_o do_v maintain_v teach_v inform_v open_o or_o in_o secret_a any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o so_o in_o the_o time_n follow_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o law_n the_o faithful_a martyr_n under_o the_o title_n of_o lollard_n have_v be_v public_o burn_v for_o speak_v preach_v write_a and_o declare_v against_o the_o decree_n and_o superstition_n establish_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o it_o be_v as_o plain_a that_o neither_o the_o scripture_n nor_o any_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n nor_o any_o other_o point_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v receive_v among_o they_o but_o that_o which_o be_v warrant_v by_o this_o authority_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v easy_o collect_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o law_n and_o injunction_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o none_o may_v buy_v nor_o sell_v but_o such_o only_a that_o have_v the_o mark_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n we_o be_v not_o to_o take_v the_o name_n alphabetical_o for_o to_o what_o end_n shall_v he_o command_v man_n to_o receive_v such_o a_o name_n as_o this_o but_o if_o you_o take_v the_o name_n for_o the_o universal_a headship_n and_o the_o mark_n for_o the_o public_a own_n of_o subjection_n to_o this_o headship_n there_o be_v great_a reason_n give_v for_o the_o make_n of_o such_o a_o statute_n and_o it_o be_v full_o prove_v by_o the_o event_n the_o seven_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o great_a antichrist_n as_o he_o be_v set_v forth_o 2_o thess._n 2._o for_o the_o pith_n and_o marrow_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o description_n be_v to_o express_v the_o great_a sublimity_n of_o power_n that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v assume_v to_o himself_o in_o and_o over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n he_o as_o god_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n vers_fw-la 4._o from_o these_o word_n we_o may_v gather_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n lie_v in_o the_o affectation_n of_o a_o kind_n of_o godlike_a dominion_n and_o headship_n in_o and_o over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o then_o as_o the_o ●…on_n of_o god_n have_v merit_v of_o his_o father_n to_o be_v only_a head_n and_o only_a lord_n so_o must_v our_o subjection_n be_v render_v to_o he_o without_o communicability_n of_o such_o a_o prerogative_n to_o any_o other_o for_o though_o there_o be_v god_n many_o and_o lord_n many_o there_o be_v but_o one_o universal_a head_n on_o who_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n do_v depend_v in_o this_o sense_n as_o the_o son_n have_v merit_v of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a lord_n and_o head_n there_o be_v none_o de_fw-la jure_fw-la can_v be_v but_o himself_o only_o now_o then_o when_o paul_n in_o the_o thessalonian_n do_v describe_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n he_o do_v show_v that_o it_o do_v chief_o confist_n in_o the_o headship_n and_o dominion_n over_o the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o john_n in_o the_o revelation_n call_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o so_o far_o we_o have_v go_v in_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o number_n we_o have_v show_v by_o many_o reason_n that_o the_o name_n be_v the_o headship_n of_o the_o beast_n now_o we_o shall_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n endeavour_v to_o calculate_v and_o compute_v the_o number_n chap._n iu._n concern_v the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n where_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n begin_v public_o to_o be_v establish_v under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n 666_o year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o f●…th_v metal_n kingdom_n for_o the_o carry_v on_o of_o this_o complicate_v proposition_n we_o be_v to_o make_v two_o thing_n clear_a first_o that_o the_o name_n or_o sovereign_a dominion_n of_o the_o beast_n begin_v precise_o at_o that_o time_n of_o the_o universal_a headship_n under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n second_o that_o there_o be_v a_o c●…in_n of_o 666_o year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal_n kingdom_n to_o the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n afcre●…aid_v first_o concern_v the_o e●…sion_n of_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n i_o find_v a_o great_a consent_n in_o the_o commentary_n controversy_n and_o story_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n begin_v in_o the_o universal_a headship_n under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n crackan●…orp_n in_o his_o treatise_n against_o spala●…_n call_v it_o the_o c●…_n one_o of_o the_o building_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n though_o many_o author_n do_v stiff_o maintain_v that_o the_o name_n be_v the_o word_n lateinos_n and_o that_o the_o number_n be_v make_v out_o of_o the_o numeral_a letter_n of_o that_o name_n yet_o if_o you_o put_v they_o upon_o it_o to_o state_n the_o original_a of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n they_o do_v general_o in_o a_o manner_n pitch_n upon_o the_o year_n aforesaid_a but_o we_o will_v not_o depend_v upon_o authority_n therefore_o to_o the_o right_n compute_v of_o ●…he_a true_a apocalyptical_a time_n we_o will_v observe_v these_o ensue_a principle_n principle_n 1._o there_o must_v be_v some_o particular_a instant_n of_o time_n when_o the_o antichristian_a state_n type_v by_o the_o beast_n with_o two_o horn_n have_v its_o first_o visible_a rise_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n this_o be_v prove_v from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n and_o i_o behold_v another_o beast_n come_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o he_o have_v two_o horn_n like_o the_o lamb_n and_o he_o speak_v as_o the_o dragon_n rev._n 13._o 11._o and_o therefore_o as_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a and_o determinate_a time_n when_o the_o babylonian_a lion_n and_o the_o persian_a bear_n come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o sea_n that_o be_v as_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a time_n when_o the_o babylolonian_a and_o persian_a monarchy_n begin_v so_o there_o must_v be_v a_o particular_a and_o certain_a term_n of_o time_n when_o the_o antichristian_a monarchy_n must_v come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o earth_n also_o if_o this_o be_v well_o observe_v it_o will_v cut_v off_o a_o multitude_n of_o super●…luous_a di●…putes_n concern_v the_o infancy_n childhood_n middle_a age_n and_o other_o degree_n of_o the_o antichristian_a state_n in_o these_o point_v every_o man_n may_v abound_v in_o his_o own_o fancy_n but_o sure_o i_o be_o according_a to_o the_o true_a apocalyptical_a process_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v but_o of_o one_o visible_a and_o remarkable_a beginning_n of_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n and_o this_o be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o rise_a ou●…_n of_o the_o earth_n princ._n 2._o second_o the_o time_n of_o the_o rise_n of_o this_o beast_n must_v be_v after_o the_o dissipation_n of_o the_o old_a empire_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o ten_o king_n type_v and_o figure_v by_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o ten-horned_n beast_n out_o of_o the_o sea_n there_o be_v two_o branch_n in_o this_o principle_n the_o first_o be_v this_o that_o the_o time_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n must_v needs_o be_v place_v after_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n this_o be_v clear_o prove_v from_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o 13_o and_o 17_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n both_o these_o scripture_n do_v pitch_n upon_o this_o that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o take_n away_o of_o the_o imperial_a majesty_n and_o a_o kind_n of_o chasm_n
the_o church_n to_o let_v pass_v the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o phrase_n let_v we_o serious_o ponder_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n the_o lord_n do_v reveal_v to_o nabuchadnezzar_n thing_n that_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o latter_a time_n but_o the_o great_a question_n be_v in_o specie_fw-la what_o latter_a time_n be_v here_o intend_v it_o be_v confess_v by_o all_o that_o the_o monarchical_a kingdom_n be_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o come_v of_o christ_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n be_v clear_a that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v begin_v in_o the_o time_n of_o these_o kingdom_n now_o our_o saviour_n be_v bear_v his_o gospel_n be_v preach_v and_o his_o kingdom_n begin_v when_o the_o earth_n and_o particular_o that_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v under_o the_o sovereign_a dominion_n of_o the_o roman_n to_o i_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o infallible_a reason_n that_o the_o roman_a must_v be_v one_o of_o the_o monarchical_a kingdom_n and_o the_o four_o in_o particular_a because_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n do_v then_o begin_v when_o the_o earth_n be_v under_o the_o authority_n and_o dominion_n of_o that_o people_n but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o junius_n they_o which_o follow_v the_o latter_a opinion_n do_v well_o to_o end_v daniel_n prophecy_n at_o christ._n but_o this_o they_o ought_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o declare_v the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n universal_o but_o only_o so_o far_o as_o it_o concern_v the_o jew_n and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o in_o our_o judgement_n we_o can_v approve_v it_o that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o four_o kingdom_n answer_n for_o the_o maxim_n that_o the_o four_o monarchy_n be_v describe_v only_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o jew_n i_o do_v yield_v it_o to_o be_v a_o truth_n so_o far_o as_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o only_a people_n of_o god_n but_o when_o the_o gentile_n also_o become_v his_o people_n the_o monarchy_n be_v describe_v in_o relation_n to_o they_o so_o then_o the_o metal-kingdom_n be_v not_o relate_v to_o the_o jew_n only_o nor_o to_o the_o gentile_n only_o but_o to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n among_o many_o this_o one_o argument_n may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o clear_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o we_o affirm_v at_o the_o end_n of_o these_o kingdom_n it_o be_v mention_v that_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o dominion_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o kingdom_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a chap._n 7._o vers_fw-la 27._o who_o be_v they_o that_o be_v the_o people_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a shall_v we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v only_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n then_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n only_o shall_v constitute_v and_o make_v up_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n and_o how_o contrary_a be_v this_o to_o all_o colour_n and_o show_v of_o truth_n second_o admit_v it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o metal-kingdom_n the_o lord_n shall_v only_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n this_o do_v not_o exclude_v the_o roman_a from_o be_v one_o of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n for_o as_o the_o jew_n be_v sometime_o under_o the_o babylonian_n sometime_o under_o the_o persian_n sometime_o under_o the_o grecian_n so_o sixty_o year_n before_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o lord_n they_o come_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v the_o particular_a nation_n and_o state_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n speak_v the_o people_n of_o the_o prince_n that_o shall_v come_v shall_v destroy_v the_o city_n and_o sanctuary_n dan._n 9_o 26._o if_o you_o number_v the_o time_n from_o that_o instant_n when_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o roman_n begin_v you_o shall_v find_v that_o there_o be_v 130_o year_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o titus_n and_o vespasian_n so_o long_a the_o jewish_a church_n and_o nation_n be_v under_o the_o roman_a obedience_n so_o then_o we_o conclude_v if_o the_o monarchy_n be_v number_v only_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o jew_n the_o roman_a may_v be_v one_o of_o the_o four_o as_o well_o as_o the_o babylonian_a persian_a o●…_n grecian_a what_o shall_v hinder_v junius_n they_o that_o so_o number_n must_v of_o necessity_n confound_v the_o popular_a state_n with_o the_o sovereign_a command_n of_o one_o which_o be_v here_o only_o mention_v neither_o do_v the_o roman_n any_o way_n afflict_v the_o jew_n till_o the_o time_n of_o cleopatra_n or_o herod_n answer_n this_o be_v most_o true_a that_o the_o jew_n come_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n and_o therefore_o in_o these_o time_n we_o begin_v the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o kingdom_n now_o whereas_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o in_o so_o do_v we_o do_v confound_v the_o popular_a state_n and_o the_o government_n by_o one_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v we_o be_v not_o here_o so_o much_o to_o look_v after_o the_o several_a form_n of_o roman_a dominion_n as_o upon_o one_o whole_a roman_a kingdom_n oppose_v to_o one_o babylonian_n to_o one_o persian_a to_o one_o grecian_a go_v before_o the_o scripture_n look_v to_o four_o kind_n of_o people_n who_o in_o their_o respective_a season_n and_o succession_n shall_v have_v absolute_a dominion_n over_o the_o earth_n and_o special_o about_o the_o confine_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o this_o difference_n we_o ought_v to_o distinguish_v each_o monarchy_n as_o the_o dominion_n pass_v from_o one_o people_n to_o another_o and_o not_o by_o the_o particular_a form_n of_o government_n observe_v by_o one_o people_n therefore_o it_o do_v full_o answer_v our_o purpose_n that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n come_v under_o the_o dominion_n and_o lordship_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n 60_o year_n before_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o lord_n now_o what_o form_n of_o dominion_n the_o roman_n than_o have_v be_v not_o to_o our_o purpose_n further_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o roman_n do_v not_o afflict_v the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n till_o the_o time_n of_o herod_n give_v i_o leave_v to_o argue_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n cyrus_n do_v not_o afflict_v the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n therefore_o the_o persian_a tyranny_n do_v not_o then_o begin_v alexander_n the_o great_a do_v not_o persecute_v the_o jew_n therefore_o the_o grecian_a monarchy_n do_v not_o begin_v in_o his_o time_n this_o way_n of_o reason_v be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o experience_n for_o to_o speak_v positive_o though_o cyrus_n do_v not_o afflict_v the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n yet_o he_o bring_v that_o church_n and_o people_n within_o the_o verge_n of_o the_o persian_a dominion_n which_o in_o all_o its_o time_n be_v a_o tyrannical_a state_n so_o alexander_n the_o great_a do_v not_o persecute_v the_o church_n yet_o he_o be_v the_o founder_n of_o the_o grecian_a empire_n which_o in_o the_o whole_a time_n thereof_o do_v more_o or_o less_o afflict_v the_o saint_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o roman_n though_o there_o be_v no_o eminent_a persecution_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n yet_o then_o the_o church_n be_v bring_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o that_o kingdom_n in_o which_o under_o which_o and_o by_o which_o there_o be_v the_o sore_a persecution_n that_o ever_o be_v as_o appear_z by_o the_o story_n of_o the_o evangel●…sts_n the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o the_o revelation_n now_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o be_v speak_v by_o mr_n broughton_n mr_n broughton_n the_o book_n of_o daniel_n handle_v principal_a point_n of_o the_o jew_n thraldom_n in_o babylon_n for_o 70_o year_n and_o seven_o time_n that_o space_n unto_o christ_n ascension_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o city_n and_o temple_n so_o that_o jerusalem_n surprise_v by_o the_o chald●…an_n and_o raze_v by_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o limit_n of_o the_o story_n answer_n if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o jerusalem_n seize_v by_o the_o chaldaean_n and_o raze_v by_o the_o roman_a that_o this_o be_v the_o limit_n of_o some_o of_o daniel_n vision_n and_o namely_o of_o the_o 70_o week_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o this_o be_v the_o boundary_a of_o all_o his_o vision_n and_o particular_o of_o all_o the_o four_o kingdom_n type_v in_o the_o metal_n of_o the_o image_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v in_o the_o process_n of_o this_o discourse_n to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o these_o kingdom_n do_v continue_v to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o the_o saint_n rev._n 20._o but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o mr_n broughton_n the_o kingdom_n of_o babel_n be_v figure_v by_o a_o tree_n touch_v in_o
trouble_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n now_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o holy_a jewish_a nation_n be_v never_o trouble_v in_o their_o whole_a state_n but_o in_o the_o time_n of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o angel_n speak_v of_o those_o day_n and_o this_o one_o speech_n may_v have_v keep_v daniel_n in_o his_o true_a meaning_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o draw_v he_o beyond_o christ._n answer_n if_o ●…_n may_v speak_v what_o i_o find_v by_o experience_n there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o place_n either_o in_o daniel_n or_o the_o revelation_n that_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v more_o intricate_a than_o the_o number_n of_o time_n mention_v in_o this_o chapter_n it_o may_v be_v the_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o time_n to_o lie_v doubtful_a and_o to_o be_v seal_v to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n vers_n 4_o 9_o however_o it_o be_v though_o i_o can_v positive_o prove_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o text_n yet_o we_o may_v firm_o conclude_v that_o the_o period_n of_o time_n do_v lead_v we_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o they_o can_v possible_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o persecution_n of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n and_o to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o jew_n under_o that_o tyranny_n but_o let_v we_o look_v to_o the_o text_n by_o the_o child_n of_o thy_o people_n we_o do_v willing_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v here_o mean_v but_o we_o do_v not_o yield_v that_o mr_n broughton_n do_v make_v a_o true_a deduction_n from_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n he_o do_v infer_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n his_o persecute_v the_o church_n michael_n may_v stand_v up_o because_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n suffer_v more_o eminent_o for_o religion_n in_o those_o time_n now_o here_o i_o say_v this_o can_v be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o great_a tribulation_n of_o the_o jew_n nor_o the_o time_n of_o the_o stand_n up_o of_o michael_n see_v the_o tribulation_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v after_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n for_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v what_o the_o angel_n do_v mean_a by_o these_o word_n he_o shall_v come_v to_o his_o end_n and_o none_o shall_v help_v he_o vers_n 45._o be_v it_o not_o clear_a by_o the_o whole_a tenor_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o north_n or_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n that_o this_o tyranny_n shall_v come_v to_o its_o end_n without_o help_n or_o remedy_n and_o then_o afterward_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n be_v destroy_v the_o great_a calamity_n shall_v fall_v upon_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o follow_a time_n second_o our_o saviour_n himself_o that_o best_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o daniel_n prophecy_n do_v express_o speak_v of_o the_o stand_n up_o of_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n mention_v by_o daniel_n the_o prophet_n he_o do_v speak_v of_o the_o great_a wrath_n that_o ever_o be_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n that_o it_o shall_v fall_v upon_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o for_o the_o elect_v sake_n only_o those_o day_n shall_v be_v shorten_v now_o then_o how_o do_v he_o apply_v these_o prediction_n not_o to_o the_o time_n of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n which_o mr_n broughton_n here_o speak_v of_o but_o as_o all_o the_o evangelist_n do_v agree_v to_o the_o last_o and_o fatal_a destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o the_o roman_n matth._n 24._o 21_o 22._o mar._n 13._o 14_o 15_o etc._n etc._n luk._n 21._o 20_o 21_o etc._n etc._n now_o whereas_o daniel_n do_v put_v the_o question_n partly_o out_o of_o a_o desire_n to_o pry_v into_o these_o mystery_n and_o partly_o to_o give_v information_n to_o the_o church_n he_o receive_v a_o answer_n suitable_a to_o the_o question_n which_o he_o do_v propound_v the_o question_n be_v this_o then_o say_v i_o o_o my_o lord_n what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o these_o thing_n vers_fw-la 8._o and_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o angel_n be_v this_o from_o the_o time_n that_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o abomination_n that_o make_v desolate_a shall_v be_v set_v up_o there_o shall_v be_v 1290_o day_n bless_a be_v he_o that_o wait_v and_o come_v to_o the_o 1335_o day_n but_o go_v thy_o way_n till_o the_o end_n be_v for_o thou_o shall_v rest_v and_o stand_v in_o the_o lot_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o day_n vers_fw-la 11_o 12_o 13._o from_o the_o scope_n of_o these_o word_n if_o we_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n be_v at_o the_o last_o and_o fatal_a destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o so_o our_o saviour_n do_v expound_v the_o word_n of_o daniel_n than_o we_o do_v infer_v from_o the_o destruction_n of_o that_o city_n there_o will_v be_v 1290_o day_n and_o then_o again_o 1335_o day_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n and_o so_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o this_o period_n of_o time_n will_v not_o extend_v only_o to_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n but_o very_o far_o beyond_o his_o time_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o it_o may_v be_v allege_v see_v that_o i_o undertake_v to_o show_v the_o length_n of_o the_o period_n how_o long_o it_o shall_v continue_v and_o the_o beginning_n from_o whence_o it_o shall_v commence_v why_o do_v not_o i_o speak_v determinate_o concern_v the_o time_n where_o it_o shall_v end_v i_o do_v only_o so_o far_o undertake_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o length_n of_o this_o period_n to_o show_v that_o daniel_n prophecy_n contain_v a_o great_a number_n of_o year_n beyond_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o this_o be_v enough_o to_o confute_v mr_n broughton_n and_o other_o interpreter_n of_o this_o way_n though_o for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o determine_v the_o question_n why_o it_o be_v say_v 1290_o day_n and_o then_o after_o that_o 1335_o day_n there_o be_v a_o special_a reason_n of_o double_v the_o number_n but_o yet_o for_o the_o accommodation_n of_o the_o time_n i_o must_v confess_v my_o ignorance_n only_o for_o the_o present_a purpose_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o say_v in_o the_o general_n that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a chain_n of_o year_n to_o begin_v after_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o that_o the_o time_n of_o daniel_n and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o revelation_n do_v both_o run_v parallel_n together_o to_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o for_o the_o true_a concord_n of_o the_o time_n i_o do_v profess_v that_o i_o lie_v in_o the_o mire_n whereas_o the_o holy_a prophet_n be_v command_v to_o seal_v and_o to_o shut_v up_o the_o vision_n we_o be_v not_o to_o take_v this_o simple_o as_o though_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o perpetual_a enclosure_n and_o a_o absolute_a concealment_n of_o the_o sense_n for_o ever_o but_o only_o that_o the_o disclose_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n they_o that_o shall_v live_v near_o upon_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n upon_o the_o border_n of_o the_o glorious_a church_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o call_v of_o the_o jew_n perhaps_o they_o shall_v see_v that_o which_o have_v lie_v hide_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o many_o age_n though_o daniel_n be_v to_o seal_v up_o the_o vision_n for_o the_o time_n present_a yet_o in_o the_o latter_a day_n many_o shall_v run_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o knowledge_n shall_v be_v increase_v vers_fw-la 4._o object_n but_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o the_o great_a question_n do_v lie_v in_o this_o from_o what_o beginning_n be_v we_o to_o fetch_v this_o period_n of_o time_n or_o where_o be_v the_o date_n thereof_o some_o place_n the_o begin_n of_o these_o year_n in_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n some_o in_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o desolation_n set_v up_o by_o julian_n the_o apostate_n sol._n for_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o that_o this_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o calamity_n under_o the_o roman_n for_o so_o our_o saviour_n do_v expound_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o prophecy_n and_o there_o be_v good_a reason_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v rest_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o such_o a_o interpreter_n as_o for_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n by_o julian_n the_o apostate_n i_o marvel_v that_o such_o a_o judicious_a interpreter_n as_o mr_n brightman_n shall_v rest_v upon_o so_o groundless_a a_o conceit_n but_o as_o groundless_a as_o it_o be_v i_o find_v that_o many_o man_n be_v carry_v away_o with_o his_o authority_n but_o first_o of_o all_o how_o be_v julian_n a_o taker_n away_o of_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n he_o rather_o countenance_v the_o jew_n against_o the_o christian_n socrat._v lib._n 3._o second_o how_o
under_o these_o tyrant_n but_o in_o this_o matter_n let_v we_o answer_v mr_n hayne_n with_o mr_n hayne_n in_o the_o first_o page_n of_o his_o book_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o eternity_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o of_o its_o extent_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o afterward_o in_o the_o second_o page_n he_o speak_v as_o follow_v of_o this_o extent_n say_v he_o be_v christ_n kingdom_n yet_o in_o regard_n that_o god_n have_v so●…etimes_o permit_v satan_n and_o wicked_a man_n in_o extraordnary_n manner_n to_o domineer_v and_o to_o exercise_v their_o worldly_a and_o ungodly_a power_n and_o that_o at_o other_o time_n he_o have_v make_v his_o own_o sovereignty_n by_o remarkable_a mercy_n and_o judgement_n to_o appear_v god_n and_o christ_n upon_o this_o more_o glorious_a expression_n of_o their_o more_o overrule_v may_v be_v then_o especial_o say_v to_o have_v a_o kingdom_n and_o to_o reign_v because_o in_o such_o time_n their_o glory_n and_o majesty_n do_v more_o manifest_o show_v itself_o exod._n 15._o 18._o 1_o sam._n 12._o 12._o obad._n vers_fw-la 21._o rev._n 12._o 10._o in_o like_a manner_n i_o may_v say_v though_o at_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v give_v to_o he_o a_o kingdom_n far_o great_a than_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o in_o regard_n that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n the_o father_n for_o many_o age_n together_o to_o permit_v rome_n imperial_a and_o afterward_o rome_n papal_n in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n to_o exercise_v their_o worldly_a power_n and_o see_v also_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n after_o some_o age_n to_o make_v his_o sovereignty_n know_v in_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o tyranny_n of_o these_o state_n and_o in_o set_v up_o the_o gospel_n as_o the_o regent_n law_n in_o this_o respect_n the_o reign_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v say_v to_o begin_v at_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n in_o the_o last_o and_o antichristian_a state_n thereof_o but_o a_o little_a further_o to_o open_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n when_o michael_n and_o his_o angel_n i._n e._n christ_n and_o his_o primitive_a martyr_n have_v conquer_v the_o dragon_n present_o and_o immediate_o upon_o the_o conquest_n this_o acclamation_n be_v hear_v i_o hear_v a_o loud_a voice_n say_v in_o heaven_n now_o be_v come_v salvation_n and_o strength_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o christ_n for_o the_o accuser_n of_o our_o brethren_n be_v cast_v down_o rev._n 12._o 10._o here_o i_o demand_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o that_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n you_o be_v to_o note_n that_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n be_v concern_v the_o fight_n between_o the_o lord_n christ_n and_o his_o primitive_a martyr_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o persecute_v empire_n of_o the_o roman_n on_o the_o otherside_n after_o a_o long_a and_o terrible_a fight_n the_o dragon_n be_v overcome_v by_o the_o faith_n and_o patience_n of_o the_o martyr_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o faith_n ground_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a when_o the_o christian_a faith_n as_o the_o best_a expositor_n will_v have_v it_o become_v religio_fw-la imperii_fw-la the_o religion_n of_o the_o empire_n then_o at_o that_o time_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o christ_n be_v reveal_v to_o the_o world_n the_o deliverance_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n from_o under_o the_o ten_o first_o persecution_n be_v much_o desire_v before_o but_o it_o be_v not_o effect_v till_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a to_o his_o time_n then_o that_o notable_a expression_n the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o christ_n be_v come_v be_v more_o immediate_o ●…o_o be_v apply_v by_o that_o which_o the_o church_n have_v have_v experience_n of_o already_o we_o may_v learn_v what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o her_o deliverance_n from_o under_o antichristian_a suffering_n and_o of_o the_o future_a reign_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o earth_n for_o 1000_o year_n and_o though_o there_o be_v some_o beginning_n of_o his_o monarchical_a reign_n in_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n yet_o that_o be_v but_o radiatura_fw-la vel_fw-la specimen_fw-la regni_fw-la christi_fw-la a_o glimpse_n or_o a_o hand●…el_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o future_a liberty_n of_o the_o church_n that_o shall_v be_v for_o that_o glory_n be_v eclipse_v and_o the_o church_n fall_v under_o persecution_n in_o all_o antichristian_a time_n when_o those_o time_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n shall_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ._n and_o so_o they_o shall_v continue_v and_o remain_v for_o many_o year_n when_o jew_n and_o gentile_n both_o together_o shall_v make_v a_o glorious_a church_n under_o christ_n their_o head_n and_o king_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n after_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n it_o be_v express_o say_v the_o dominion_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o that_o this_o dominion_n be_v to_o continue_v for_o ever_o dan._n 7._o 27._o now_o then_o if_o the_o monarchical_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n do_v begin_v at_o the_o incarnation_n and_o so_o forward_o to_o continue_v for_o ever_o what_o shall_v we_o make_v of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n for_o so_o many_o age_n together_o christ_n have_v reign_v but_o a_o little_a if_o we_o look_v to_o a_o exterior_a reign_n mr_n hayne_n the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n and_o of_o other_o tyrant_n be_v no_o impeachment_n to_o christ_n absolute_a sovereignty_n the_o wickedness_n of_o son_n take_v not_o away_o the_o fatherhood_n and_o authority_n of_o parent_n nor_o a_o debauch_a servant_n ill_a carriage_n argue_v his_o exemption_n from_o the_o master_n he_o be_v subject_a to_o david_n be_v and_o continue_v a_o king_n though_o ishbosheth_n and_o saul_n house_n though_o absalon_n his_o own_o son_n though_o sheba_n a_o benjamite_n and_o many_o of_o israel_n rise_v up_o against_o he_o and_o submit_v not_o to_o his_o sceptre_n answer_n we_o agree_v that_o the_o tyrannical_a state_n and_o by_o name_n the_o ●…ntichristian_a can_v be_v such_o impeachment_n to_o christ_n kingdom_n so_o as_o absolute_o and_o final_o to_o obstruct_v it_o in_o every_o part_n and_o point_n of_o power_n we_o yield_v also_o that_o the_o right_n belong_v to_o christ_n to_o be_v universal_a head_n of_o the_o church_n though_o antichrist_n have_v usurp_v his_o right_n for_o many_o age_n together_o and_o further_o though_o his_o jurisdiction_n have_v be_v detain_v by_o other_o a_o long_a time_n yet_o he_o have_v power_n enough_o in_o himself_o to_o recover_v it_o again_o when_o the_o time_n appoint_v for_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o tyrannical_a state_n be_v once_o fulfil_v but_o to_o say_v for_o the_o present_a that_o the_o antichristian_a state_n be_v no_o impeachment_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v a_o marvellous_a thing_n when_o a_o usurpet_fw-la be_v in_o the_o place_n of_o government_n be_v this_o no_o impeachment_n to_o the_o lawful_a power_n all_o the_o world_n do_v agree_v together_o to_o worship_v the_o beast_n and_o to_o receive_v his_o mark_n and_o be_v this_o no_o impeachment_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o great_a whore_n corrupt_v the_o earth_n with_o her_o fornication_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n agree_v together_o to_o give_v their_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n and_o be_v this_o no_o impeachment_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n though_o david_n be_v anoint_v king_n over_o israel_n and_o though_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o unction_n he_o have_v true_a title_n to_o the_o kingdom_n yet_o so_o long_o as_o saul_n and_o ishbosheth_n do_v bear_v rule_n the_o kingdom_n be_v not_o he_o in_o like_a manner_n though_o the_o lord_n christ_n by_o suffer_v death_n and_o by_o his_o unction_n have_v title_n to_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n yet_o as_o long_o as_o the_o tyrannical_a state_n of_o this_o world_n and_o particular_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n do_v continue_v the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n in_o that_o form_n and_o manner_n as_o they_o shall_v be_v be_v not_o he_o and_o therefore_o at_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o great_a city_n this_o expression_n be_v use_v the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ._n here_o be_v a_o tacit_a implication_n that_o they_o be_v none_o of_o his_o kingdom_n before_o in_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o text_n intend_v mr_n hayne_n you_o much_o debase_v and_o vilify_v christ_n and_o his_o kingdom_n in_o compare_v it_o and_o count_v it_o inferior_a to_o
the_o same_o time_n of_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n under_o the_o type_n of_o a_o beast_n with_o ten_o horn_n this_o be_v once_o explain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o number_n 666_o and_o other_o apocalyptical_a mystery_n will_v begin_v to_o be_v make_v clear_a but_o see_v that_o dr_n willet_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o daniel_n and_o in_o his_o appendix_n against_o grasserus_n be_v something_o more_o copious_a in_o this_o matter_n we_o will_v therefore_o more_o diligent_o inquire_v whether_o the_o four_o beast_n in_o daniel_n be_v the_o seleucian_n or_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n the_o query_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n the_o first_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n the_o second_o from_o the_o ten_o horn_n the_o three_o from_o the_o description_n of_o the_o little_a horn._n the_o query_n from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n be_v these_o querie_n 1_o how_o can_v the_o seleucidae_n be_v the_o four_o kingdom_n upon_o the_o earth_n under_o the_o type_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n see_v they_o be_v one_o of_o the_o four_o head_n of_o the_o three_o beast_n go_v before_o chap._n 7._o vers_fw-la 6._o chap._n 8._o vers_fw-la 8_o 22._o if_o they_o make_v one_o of_o the_o four_o head_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o successor_n of_o alexander_n they_o can_v be_v the_o four_o kingdom_n the_o four_o beast_n must_v necessary_o be_v the_o roman_a seeing_z the_o third_z with_o four_o head_n be_v the_o grecian_a go_v before_o but_o dr_n willet_n thus_o reply_v alexander_n four_o captain_n be_v at_o the_o first_o regent_n under_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n aridaeus_n but_o they_o become_v the_o four_o beast_n when_o they_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n to_o themselves_o if_o we_o put_v alexander_n and_o his_o successor_n together_o we_o can_v give_v a_o clear_a reason_n why_o the_o three_o beast_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v four_o head_n because_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o people_n of_o greece_n that_o nation_n become_v divide_v into_o four_o kingdom_n as_o appear_v dan._n 8._o 8_o 22._o but_o if_o we_o take_v alexander_n and_o his_o successor_n aridaeus_n asunder_o from_o the_o four_o successor_n i_o can_v see_v possible_o how_o the_o kingdom_n of_o alexander_n in_o that_o abstract_n consideration_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v four_o head_n or_o that_o it_o may_v be_v decipher_v proper_o by_o such_o a_o character_n the_o four_o head_n do_v signify_v the_o four_o division_n of_o the_o greek_a monarchy_n and_o can_v this_o be_v a_o character_n of_o alexander_n kingdom_n which_o in_o itself_o consider_v have_v no_o head_n part_n or_o division_n at_o all_o the_o scripture_n speak_v plain_o that_o the_o grecian_a be_v one_o entire_a kingdom_n in_o he_o and_o after_o his_o eradication_n the_o dominion_n begin_v to_o be_v divide_v into_o four_o part_n therefore_o his_o successor_n quatenus_fw-la head_n have_v no_o be_v at_o all_o in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o his_o dominion_n much_o less_o can_v they_o be_v the_o character_n of_o his_o kingdom_n at_o who_o only_a extirpation_n they_o be_v to_o begin_v as_o head_n of_o the_o grecian_a state_n beside_o it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a work_n to_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o story_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o alexander_n be_v govern_v by_o four_o principal_a regent_n in_o his_o time_n and_o further_o if_o it_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v still_o this_o will_v be_v a_o great_a question_n whether_o in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o monarchy_n the_o scripture_n will_v look_v to_o such_o inferior_a administration_n darius_n the_o king_n set_v over_o the_o mede-persian_a kingdom_n 120_o prince_n dan._n 6._o 1_o 2_o 3._o and_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o this_o number_n of_o regent_n be_v set_v forth_o as_o the_o special_a character_n of_o that_o monarchy_n we_o have_v a_o clear_a reason_n in_o the_o scripture_n wherefore_o the_o grecian_a state_n be_v figure_v by_o the_o type_n of_o four_o head_n scil_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o quadri-partite_a division_n of_o alexander_n kingdom●…_n after_o his_o death_n therefore_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o four_o regent_n of_o alexander_n during_o his_o life_n time_n i_o take_v rather_o to_o be_v a_o evasion_n than_o a_o just_a truth_n ground_v upon_o the_o prophecy_n or_o the_o civil_a story_n querie_n 2._o how_o can_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o seleucidae_n be_v the_o four_o kingdom_n upon_o the_o earth_n that_o shall_v be_v different_a from_o the_o former_a and_o shall_v devour_v the_o whole_a earth_n and_o tread_v it_o down_o and_o break_v it_o in_o piece_n chap._n 7._o vers_fw-la 23._o how_o can_v this_o be_v apply_v to_o they_o the_o seleucidae_n be_v far_o inferior_a to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o alexander_n four_o king_n or_o kingdom_n do_v arise_v out_o of_o he_o but_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o strength_n chap._n 8._o vers_fw-la 22._o further_o the_o seleucians_n be_v far_o inferior_a to_o the_o former_a monarchy_n of_o babel_n and_o persia_n in_o greatness_n of_o power_n and_o largeness_n of_o dominion_n on_o the_o contrary_a if_o we_o apply_v the_o four_o beast_n to_o the_o roman_a all_o the_o property_n of_o that_o beast_n will_v be_v verify_v i●…_n him_z first_o the_o admirable_a condition_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n above_o the_o former_a second_o his_o multi-form_n and_o various_a shape_n three_o the_o greatness_n of_o terror_n four_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o strength_n five_o his_o iron-teeth_n and_o brazen-nayle_n six_o his_o action_n to_o devour_v and_o to_o break_v in_o piece_n seven_o the_o object_n of_o his_o victory_n to_o subdue_v the_o whole_a earth_n eight_o the_o time_n of_o the_o continuance_n and_o so_o the_o earth_n have_v long_a continue_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o roman_n than_o under_o any_o nay_o under_o a●…l_a the_o metal-kingdom_n all_o these_o property_n agree_v to_o the_o roman_a and_o i_o can_v possible_o see_v how_o they_o may_v be_v applicable_a to_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n but_o dr_n willet_n reply_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o seleucidae_n make_v the_o four_o beast_n not_o so_o much_o in_o respect_n of_o great_a strength_n as_o in_o respect_n of_o great_a cruelty_n and_o hardness_n of_o disposition_n against_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o jew_n and_o therefore_o when_o it_o be_v say_v of_o this_o kingdom_n that_o it_o do_v devour_v the_o whole_a earth_n this_o be_v not_o simple_o the_o whole_a earth_n but_o the_o whole_a earth_n about_o the_o confine_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n if_o we_o shall_v grant_v this_o principle_n of_o cruel_a disposition_n against_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n this_o will_v strong_o prove_v the_o roman_a to_o be_v the_o four_o kingdom_n for_o the_o jew_n suffer_v much_o from_o the_o babylonian_n much_o from_o the_o persian_n more_o from_o the_o grecian_n yet_o most_o of_o all_o from_o the_o roman_n they_o be_v under_o the_o roman_a tyranny_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 130_o year_n together_o and_o then_o last_o of_o all_o the_o nation_n and_o church_n be_v destroy_v by_o their_o mean_n the_o suffering_n of_o the_o jew_n under_o antiochus_n be_v great_a but_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o last_o and_o fatal_a destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n our_o saviour_n himself_o do_v testify_v as_o much_o when_o he_o speak_v concern_v the_o great_a calamity_n that_o shall_v come_v by_o the_o roman_n luk._n 21._o vers_fw-la 20_o 21_o 22_o 23._o and_o this_o also_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o a_o certain_a nameless_a writer_n in_o a_o tract_n concern_v antichrist_n and_o the_o four_o monarchy_n for_o say_v he_o quamvis_fw-la antiochus_n graviter_fw-la afflixit_fw-la ju●…aeos_fw-la tamen_fw-la ea_fw-la afflictio_fw-la ad_fw-la tempus_fw-la tantum_fw-la duravit_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la illa_fw-la 〈◊〉_d quae_fw-la a_o romans_n facta_fw-la est_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la conferenda_fw-la therefore_o if_o the_o great_a degree_n of_o cruelty_n against_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v give_v denomination_n to_o the_o four_o beast_n the_o great_a suffering_n of_o the_o jew_n have_v be_v under_o the_o roman_n second_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o monarchy_n in_o the_o chaldee_n vision_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o only_a people_n of_o god_n in_o dan._n 2._o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o how_o that_o kingdom_n shall_v break_v the_o metal-kingdom_n now_o be_v this_o verify_v in_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v they_o only_o make_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n or_o have_v they_o be_v only_o use_v as_o instrument_n to_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n again_o it_o be_v mention_v that_o the_o little_a horn_n do_v wear_v out_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a till_o the_o saint_n take_v the_o kingdom_n now_o what_o warrant_n be_v there_o to_o take_v they_o only_o for_o the_o saint_n of_o
the_o jewish_a church_n true_o indeed_o in_o the_o hebrew_n vision_n there_o be_v some_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o then_o common_o you_o shall_v see_v some_o circumstance_n in_o the_o text_n to_o decipher_v the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n only_o as_o for_o ensample_n you_o shall_v read_v something_o speak_v of_o the_o tsebi_n or_o the_o pleasant_a land_n of_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o daniel_n people_n and_o the_o like_a but_o in_o the_o chaldee_n vision_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n mention_v which_o make_v i_o to_o think_v that_o the_o saint_n there_o mention_v be_v of_o a_o more_o general_a nature_n and_o concern_v the_o people_n of_o god_n both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n indeed_o it_o be_v often_o speak_v concern_v the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a that_o the_o little_a horn_n do_v wear_v they_o out_o and_o consume_v they_o and_o that_o at_o the_o time_n appoint_v they_o shall_v take_v the_o kingdom_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o specify_v in_o daniel_n what_o these_o saint_n be_v whether_o they_o be_v the_o saint_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o gentile_n or_o both_o dr_n willet_n seem_v to_o i_o to_o give_v a_o good_a reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a scil_n in_o reference_n to_o their_o most_o high_a prince_n the_o lord_n christ._n the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n be_v fair_a for_o this_o interpretation_n and_o the_o kingdom_n and_o dominion_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o then_o in_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v his_o kingdom_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o all_o dominion_n shall_v obey_v he_o vers_n 27._o the_o kingdom_n be_v give_v to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n as_o to_o the_o head_n and_o by_o he_o it_o be_v communicate_v to_o his_o people_n and_o subject_n after_o their_o suffering_n by_o all_o that_o have_v be_v speak_v we_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n be_v the_o object_n of_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n three_o the_o great_a power_n and_o cruelty_n of_o this_o beast_n be_v not_o only_o against_o the_o saint_n but_o against_o all_o the_o former_a metal-kingdom_n for_o as_o iron_n it_o shall_v break_v they_o all_o in_o piece_n vers_n 40._o therefore_o this_o kingdom_n be_v say_v to_o be_v more_o mighty_a than_o any_o go_n before_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o exercise_n and_o employment_n of_o strength_n upon_o the_o former_a kingdom_n and_o not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o particular_a exercise_n of_o cruelty_n against_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n if_o this_o be_v so_o we_o can_v say_v that_o the_o seleucian_n be_v such_o but_o to_o the_o roman_a all_o thing_n agree_v four_o i_o do_v yield_v also_o that_o this_o expression_n be_v use_v special_o for_o that_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n about_o the_o confine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a meaning_n of_o the_o text_n when_o the_o lord_n give_v nabuchadnezzar_n the_o head_n of_o the_o image_n a_o kingdom_n power_n strength_n and_o glory_n and_o wheresoever_o the_o child_n of_o man_n dwell_v he_o give_v they_o all_o into_o his_o hand_n we_o can_v say_v that_o he_o make_v he_o ruler_n over_o all_o in_o judea_n only_o but_o he_o make_v he_o ruler_n over_o all_o the_o eastern_a country_n far_o and_o near_o round_o about_o the_o confine_n of_o that_o church_n and_o nation_n in_o like_a manner_n when_o the_o four_o kingdom_n arise_v and_o bring_v the_o earth_n into_o a_o more_o absolute_a subjection_n we_o must_v not_o only_o confine_v this_o to_o the_o country_n of_o judea_n but_o we_o must_v also_o expound_v the_o whole_a earth_n by_o some_o analogy_n to_o the_o former_a metal-kingdom_n according_a to_o this_o sense_n when_o the_o four_o kingdom_n come_v to_o the_o time_n of_o its_o monarchical_a dominion_n it_o will_v be_v the_o most_o potent_a kingdom_n that_o ever_o be_v about_o the_o confine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o will_v bring_v the_o former_a kingdom_n into_o the_o great_a subjection_n if_o you_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o seleucidae_n there_o will_v be_v no_o correspondence_n at_o all_o but_o to_o the_o roman_a all_o thing_n do_v agree_v for_o that_o kingdom_n be_v absolute_o the_o most_o mighty_a and_o the_o most_o powerful_a that_o ever_o be_v about_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o as_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n have_v judea_n under_o their_o obedience_n so_o they_o have_v the_o great_a empire_n about_o judea_n from_o east_n to_o west_n that_o ever_o be_v all_o these_o reason_n lay_v together_o show_v plain_o that_o the_o four_o beast_n be_v the_o roman_a kingdom_n and_o so_o consequent_o the_o ten-horned_n beast_n in_o daniel_n and_o the_o revelation_n be_v all_o one_o it_o be_v not_o only_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o analogy_n and_o similitude_n of_o expression_n but_o it_o be_v literal_o and_o historical_o one_o and_o the_o same_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n be_v describe_v in_o both_o prophecy_n by_o the_o same_o emblem_n and_o similitude_n and_o thus_o much_o concern_v the_o query_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n in_o the_o more_o general_a nature_n thereof_o we_o will_v now_o descend_v more_o particular_o to_o the_o ten_o horn_n and_o here_o we_o will_v show_v that_o they_o can_v be_v the_o ten_o king_n lineal_o succeed_v in_o the_o seleucian_n race_n but_o they_o be_v so_o many_o inferior_a realm_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n querie_n 1_o if_o the_o ten_o horn_n be_v ten_o seleucian_n king_n there_o will_v be_v eleven_o horn_n in_o all_o and_o how_o can_v ten_o horn_n be_v the_o character_n of_o the_o beast_n if_o in_o the_o whole_a succession_n the_o number_n of_o king_n be_v eleven_o in_o all_o the_o beast_n be_v more_o proper_o call_v unde●…em_fw-la cornupeta_fw-la the_o beast_n with_o eleven_o horn_n the_o word_n be_v plain_a the_o ten_o horn_n be_v ten_o king_n that_o shall_v arise_v and_o another_o shall_v arise_v up_o after_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v diverse_a from_o the_o first_o vers_n 24._o therefore_o if_o in_o the_o whole_a succession_n there_o be_v eleven_o king_n first_o ten_n and_o then_o another_o that_o come_v up_o after_o they_o why_o be_v the_o beast_n set_v forth_o by_o the_o special_a character_n of_o ten_o horn_n the_o little_a horn_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o more_o cruel_a and_o more_o eminent_a according_a to_o the_o text_n and_o yet_o by_o this_o rule_n that_o which_o be_v more_o principal_a shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o the_o denomination_n but_o doctor_n willet_n have_v this_o evasion_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o little_a horn_n do_v not_o come_v up_o after_o the_o ten_o but_o it_o come_v up_o as_o the_o last_o of_o they_o and_o so_o piscator_fw-la render_v the_o word_n et_fw-la cornua_fw-la decem_fw-la ex_fw-la illo_fw-la regno_fw-la nempe_fw-la decem_fw-la reges_fw-la exsurgent_fw-la &_o postremus_fw-la resurget_fw-la post_fw-la illos_fw-la &_o be_v diversus_fw-la erit_fw-la à_fw-la prioribus_fw-la and_o in_o his_o scholia_fw-la upon_o the_o 8_o verse_n he_o thus_o speak_v vox_fw-la chaldaica_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d quae_fw-la versu_fw-la sexto_fw-la &_o septimo_fw-la significat_fw-la alium_fw-la hic_fw-la valet_fw-la ultimum_fw-la seu_fw-la postremum_fw-la nam_fw-la antiochus_n epiphanes_n qui_fw-la per_fw-la cornu_fw-la illud_fw-la figurabatur_fw-la fuit_fw-la vltimus_fw-la inter_fw-la decem_fw-la illos_fw-la reges_fw-la qui_fw-la hîc_fw-la per_fw-la decem_fw-la cornua_fw-la figurantur_fw-la but_o let_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o chaldee_n word_n may_v indefinite_o be_v take_v yet_o it_o be_v to_o our_o purpose_n to_o consider_v what_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n will_v admit_v in_o the_o former_a verse_n when_o the_o description_n of_o the_o babylonian-lyon_n be_v end_v it_o be_v there_o mention_v i_o behold_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d another_o beast_n like_o a_o bear_n not_o a_o latter_a beast_n that_o come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o sea_n for_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o show_v the_o rise_n of_o four_o several_a monarchy_n each_o one_o diverse_a from_o other_o so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n after_o the_o description_n of_o the_o ten_o horn_n the_o little_a horn_n be_v say_v to_o be_v another_o that_o come_v up_o after_o they_o to_o show_v the_o notable_a diversity_n between_o it_o and_o the_o horn_n that_o come_v up_o before_o and_o so_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o text_n that_o another_o horn_n much_o differ_v from_o the_o former_a ten_o in_o nature_n and_o condition_n come_v up_o after_o they_o in_o order_n of_o time_n second_o suppose_v we_o shall_v let_v this_o translation_n pass_v postremum_fw-la exsurget_fw-la post_fw-la illa_fw-la a_o latter_a shall_v arise_v after_o they_o here_o i_o
mingle_n one_o with_o another_o to_o preserve_v the_o union_n of_o a_o kingdom_n on_o the_o contrary_a if_o we_o take_v the_o ten_o horn_n for_o ten_o king_n or_o kingdom_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o ordinary_a than_o to_o establish_v league_n and_o confederacy_n betwixt_o kingdom_n and_o state_n that_o be_v contemporary_a each_o with_o other_o for_o that_o which_o they_o allege_v concern_v the_o division_n betwixt_o the_o seleucidae_n and_o the_o lagidae_n we_o have_v speak_v thereof_o already_o and_o therefore_o we_o will_v not_o repeat_v the_o same_o thing_n again_o let_v we_o now_o in_o the_o last_o place_n come_v to_o those_o query_n concern_v the_o collation_n of_o the_o little_a horn_n mention_v dan._n 7._o and_o that_o little_a horn_n speak_v of_o chap._n 8._o for_o they_o that_o differ_v from_o we_o stand_v much_o upon_o this_o that_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n be_v signify_v in_o both_o scripture_n under_o the_o same_o emblem_n here_o we_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o two_o point_n first_o that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n do_v repeat_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o vision_n but_o then_o there_o must_v be_v some_o good_a evidence_n from_o the_o text_n to_o prove_v the_o thing_n repeat_v to_o be_v the_o same_o though_o the_o expression_n be_v divers_a now_o what_o good_a proof_n be_v there_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 7._o and_o that_o little_a horn_n chap._n 8._o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o second_o we_o agree_v that_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n the_o grecian_a antichrist_n do_v resemble_v the_o roman_a antichrist_n in_o many_o thing_n and_o that_o the_o one_o be_v the_o express_a image_n and_o type_n of_o the_o other_o in_o these_o particular_n than_o they_o do_v agree_v and_o be_v parallel_n antiochus_n the_o little_a horn_n dan._n 8._o the_o papacy_n the_o little_a horn_n dan._n 7._o 1._o out_o of_o the_o grecian_a kingdom_n there_o come_v forth_o a_o little_a horn_n vers_fw-la 9_o 1._o after_o the_o ten_o king_n a_o little_a horn_n do_v arise_v out_o of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n vers_fw-la 8._o 2._o he_o do_v destroy_v the_o mighty_a &_o the_o holy_a people_n vers_n 24._o 2._o he_o shall_v wear_v out_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a vers_n 21_o 23._o 3._o he_o shall_v magnify_v himself_o in_o his_o heart_n against_o the_o god_n of_o god_n vers_fw-la 25._o 3._o he_o shall_v speak_v great_a thing_n against_o the_o most_o high_a vers_n 25._o 4._o by_o he_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o vers_n 11._o 4._o he_o shall_v think_v to_o change_v time_n and_o law_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v into_o his_o hand_n vers_n 25._o in_o these_o several_a particular_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o little_a horn_n mention_v chap._n 7._o and_o chap._n 8._o do_v both_o agree_v but_o yet_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o diligent_o consider_v the_o scripture_n he_o shall_v find_v they_o to_o differ_v in_o the_o most_o remarkable_a circumstance_n first_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o state_n or_o government_n where_o they_o arise_v the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 8._o rose_n out_o of_o one_o of_o the_o four_o division_n of_o the_o grecian_a state_n but_o the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 7._o arise_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n type_v by_o the_o four_o beast_n which_o all_o our_o argument_n asoremention_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o roman_a kingdom_n second_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o preparation_n and_o mould_v of_o the_o state_n before_o the_o rise_n of_o either_o of_o they_o for_o the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 8._o arise_v out_o of_o one_o of_o the_o four_o division_n of_o the_o greek_a empire_n but_o the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 7._o arise_v after_o the_o division_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n into_o ten_o inferior_a realm_n three_o they_o differ_v in_o their_o action_n for_o the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 8._o be_v only_o say_v to_o rise_v out_o of_o one_o of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n of_o the_o grecian_a empire_n but_o the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 7._o be_v say_v to_o arise_v after_o the_o ten_o kingdom_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o that_o he_o do_v pluck_v up_o three_o of_o the_o former_a kingdom_n by_o the_o root_n this_o be_v clear_a from_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n four_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o object_n of_o their_o tyranny_n for_o though_o the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 8._o be_v say_v to_o destroy_v the_o holy_a people_n vers_n 24._o yet_o the_o whole_a scope_n of_o the_o text_n show_v that_o only_a the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v here_o intend_v now_o for_o the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 7._o he_o be_v say_v to_o wear_v out_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a but_o there_o be_v no_o circumstance_n in_o the_o text_n to_o prove_v that_o these_o be_v the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o take_v away_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n or_o of_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n or_o of_o daniel_n people_n or_o the_o pleasant_a land_n or_o any_o such_o passage_n which_o the_o prophet_n use_v when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o jew_n all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v be_v this_o that_o he_o shall_v change_v law_n and_o time_n but_o from_o hence_o we_o can_v infer_v that_o these_o must_v be_v the_o law_n and_o time_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n for_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o great_a antichrist_n do_v use_v such_o a_o expression_n he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n 2_o thess._n 2._o and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o literal_a temple_n in_o jerusalem_n five_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o continuance_n of_o their_o tyranny_n the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 8._o shall_v prevail_v and_o the_o sanctuary_n shall_v be_v tread_v down_o unto_o evening_n morning_n 2300_o vers_fw-la 14._o now_o for_o the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 7._o he_o shall_v wear_v out_o the_o saint_n a_o time_n and_o time_n and_o half_a a_o time_n till_o the_o saint_n themselves_o take_v the_o kingdom_n how_o this_o time_n and_o time_n and_o half_a a_o time_n shall_v be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o 2300_o evening_n morning_n i_o can_v discern_v if_o you_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n a_o time_n and_o time_n and_o half_a a_o time_n be_v the_o full_a sum_n of_o the_o antichristian_a tyranny_n rev._n 12._o 14._o six_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o event_n for_o after_o the_o 2300_o evening_n morning_n the_o temple_n be_v cleanse_v vers_fw-la 14._o and_o after_o that_o the_o little_a horn_n have_v finish_v his_o time_n he_o be_v break_v without_o hand_n vers_n 25._o all_o these_o thing_n be_v true_o fulfil_v in_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n but_o if_o you_o apply_v the_o little_a horn_n chap._n 7._o to_o antiochus_n there_o can_v be_v no_o right_a accommodation_n first_o that_o little_a horn_n do_v wear_v out_o the_o saint_n till_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n but_o so_o do_v not_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n second_o the_o little_a horn_n do_v wear_v out_o the_o saint_n a_o time_n and_o time_n and_o half_a a_o time_n till_o the_o dominion_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n be_v give_v to_o the_o saint_n but_o so_o do_v not_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n three_o the_o little_a horn_n shall_v continue_v till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n but_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o seleucians_n end_v not_o at_o antiochus_n many_o of_o that_o line_n succeed_v afterward_o in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o there_o be_v a_o good_a space_n of_o time_n from_o the_o death_n of_o antiochus_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o seleucian_n state_n by_o pompey_n the_o great_a but_o dr_n willet_n reply_v though_o the_o kingdom_n be_v not_o utter_o ruin_v yet_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o be_v much_o abate_v at_o antiochus_n his_o death_n by_o the_o like_a reason_n i_o may_v argue_v that_o there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o the_o babylonian_a kingdom_n at_o the_o death_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n because_o the_o glory_n of_o that_o kingdom_n do_v afterward_o abate_v in_o evilmerodach_n i_o may_v argue_v also_o that_o the_o grecian_a kingdom_n end_v in_o alexander_n because_o the_o king_n that_o arise_v after_o he_o do_v not_o arise_v in_o his_o strength_n other_o there_o be_v that_o do_v allege_v the_o word_n of_o the_o eleven_o verse_n i_o behold_v then_o because_o of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o great_a word_n which_o the_o little_a horn_n speak_v i_o behold_v even_o till_o the_o beast_n be_v slay_v and_o his_o body_n give_v to_o the_o burn_a fire_n from_o hence_o they_o gather_v that_o the_o little_a horn_n be_v first_o break_v off_o and_o when_o the_o beast_n be_v hornless_a and_o harmless_a than_o he_o be_v destroy_v
the_o latter_a day_n dan._n 10._o 14._o from_o all_o which_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o monarchy_n be_v special_o number_v according_a to_o church-relation_n and_o therefore_o the_o roman_a begin_v as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n when_o the_o church_n come_v first_o under_o the_o obedience_n of_o that_o people_n let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o argument_n argument_n ii_o where_o the_o grecian_a kingdom_n type_v by_o the_o brass-metal_n and_o the_o three_o beast_n make_v a_o end_n there_o do_v the_o roman_a type_v by_o the_o iron-metal_n and_o the_o four_o beast_n begin_v but_o at_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n in_o asia_n and_o at_o the_o conquest_n of_o judea_n the_o grecian_a kingdom_n type_v by_o the_o brass-metal_n and_o the_o three_o beast_n do_v make_v a_o end_n therefore_o at_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n and_o at_o the_o conquest_n of_o judea_n the_o roman_a type_v by_o the_o iron-metal_n and_o the_o four_o beast_n begin_v the_o major_n be_v evident_a it_o be_v a_o rule_v case_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o metal-kingdom_n that_o where_o the_o former_a cease_v the_o latter_a do_v begin_v all_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o assumption_n whether_o the_o grecian_a end_v as_o the_o three_o metal-kingdom_n at_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o seleucian_n here_o i_o find_v that_o interpreter_n be_v great_o divide_v they_o agree_v in_o it_o that_o the_o grecian_a be_v the_o three_o kingdom_n but_o they_o be_v divide_v about_o the_o particular_a time_n when_o that_o empire_n end_v for_o all_o the_o successor_n of_o alexander_n come_v not_o under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n his_o successor_n in_o greece_n end_v when_o macedonia_n be_v make_v a_o roman_a province_n by_o aemilius_n the_o consul_n 166_o year_n before_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o lord_n his_o successor_n the_o seleucidae_n in_o syria_n and_o judea_n end_v when_o all_o that_o tract_n of_o land_n be_v bring_v under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o pompey_n the_o great_a &_o this_o be_v do_v about_o 60_o year_n before_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o lord_n his_o successor_n the_o lagidae_n in_o egypt_n be_v make_v a_o roman_a province_n by_o augustus_n caesar_n &_o this_o be_v do_v 28_o year_n before_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o then_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o all_o alexander_n successor_n fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o roman_n yet_o all_o fall_v not_o under_o the_o roman_a obedience_n at_o one_o time_n the_o great_a question_n be_v where_o we_o shall_v set_v the_o end_v of_o the_o grecian_a kingdom_n as_o type_v by_o the_o three_o beast_n and_o the_o brass-metal_n and_o this_o i_o say_v must_v needs_o be_v at_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o seleucian_n 60_o year_n before_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o lord_n first_o in_o the_o original_a distribution_n of_o alexander_n kingdom_n judea_n be_v plead_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o seleucian_n polyb._n lib._n 5._o and_o therefore_o the_o seleucian_n be_v that_o successor_n to_o who_o the_o title_n of_o the_o monarchy_n do_v principal_o appertain_v i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o lagidae_n sometime_o make_v their_o incursion_n into_o judea_n as_o may_v be_v see_v dan._n 11._o but_o in_o the_o original_a constitution_n of_o the_o kingdom_n judea_n be_v allot_v to_o the_o seleucian_n and_o that_o which_o may_v strengthen_v our_o argument_n if_o you_o read_v josephus_n the_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n and_o suchlike_a story_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n have_v be_v whole_o in_o a_o manner_n from_o those_o successor_n of_o alexander_n that_o be_v of_o the_o seleucian_n line_n and_o this_o to_o i_o be_v a_o great_a reason_n wherefore_o the_o grecian_a kingdom_n type_v by_o the_o brass-metal_n be_v rather_o to_o end_v at_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n second_o at_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o successor_n of_o alexander_n at_o several_a time_n the_o fall_n of_o the_o seleucian_n be_v only_o at_o that_o time_n when_o judea_n jerusalem_n and_o all_o that_o continent_n of_o land_n fall_v under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_n mr_n mede_n and_o some_o historian_n do_v look_v principal_o when_o greece_n the_o head-province_n be_v bring_v into_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_n by_o aemilius_n the_o consul_n they_o look_v here_o more_o special_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n but_o at_o this_o very_a time_n judea_n be_v under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n and_o the_o true_a grecian_a kingdom_n type_v by_o the_o brass-metal_n and_o the_o three_o beast_n in_o great_a vigour_n and_o sulness_n of_o strength_n for_o though_o in_o those_o time_n greece_n their_o native_a country_n be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o grecian_n yet_o nevertheless_o that_o people_n have_v still_o the_o sovereign_a dominion_n in_o and_o about_o the_o border_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o continue_a for_o the_o space_n of_o 106_o year_n till_o the_o time_n of_o pompey_n the_o great_a then_o the_o selcucian_n kingdom_n and_o together_o with_o it_o all_o the_o land_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n fall_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o state_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o which_o may_v add_v to_o the_o force_n of_o this_o reason_n let_v we_o consider_v first_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n second_o the_o government_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v erect_v for_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o church_n for_o 2000_o year_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o charter_n to_o abraham_n unto_o thy_o seed_n have_v i_o give_v this_o land_n from_o the_o river_n of_o egypt_n to_o the_o great_a river_n euphrates_n gen._n 15._o 18_o 19_o 20._o this_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o day_n of_o joshua_n who_o bring_v israel_n into_o the_o possession_n thereof_o second_o for_o the_o government_n here_o erect_v the_o scripture_n do_v take_v notice_n that_o these_o country_n be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o then_o after_o that_o under_o the_o king_n of_o the_o line_n of_o david_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o captivity_n and_o then_o it_o be_v reveal_v to_o nibuchadn●…zzar_n in_o the_o image_n of_o persecute_v empire_n what_o succession_n of_o tyranny_n shall_v be_v in_o and_o over_o those_o country_n for_o as_o sometime_o the_o king_n of_o the_o line_n of_o david_n do_v bear_v rule_n in_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n so_o they_o continue_v the_o government_n till_o the_o people_n of_o babel_n get_v the_o dominion_n so_o the_o people_n of_o babel_n carry_v on_o the_o time_n of_o the_o golden-metal_n till_o the_o people_n of_o media_n and_o persia_n do_v take_v the_o kingdom_n and_o after_o that_o the_o people_n of_o media_n and_o persia_n do_v continue_v the_o time_n of_o the_o silver-metal_n till_o they_o be_v subdue_v by_o the_o people_n of_o greece_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o alexander_n the_o great_a and_o after_o the_o victory_n of_o alexander_n the_o people_n of_o greece_n go_v on_o with_o the_o sovereign_a dominion_n over_o all_o the_o territory_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o river_n of_o egypt_n to_o the_o great_a river_n euphrates_n till_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n by_o pompey_n the_o great_a and_o then_o all_o that_o tract_n of_o land_n come_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n so_o then_o we_o may_v conclude_v as_o the_o seleucian_n be_v the_o immediate_a successor_n of_o alexander_n in_o and_o over_o the_o continent_n of_o the_o church_n so_o where_o he_o end_v as_o the_o three_o metal-kingdom_n over_o the_o church_n there_o the_o roman_a do_v begin_v as_o the_o four_o object_n but_o some_o perhaps_o may_v reason_n that_o the_o lagidae_n the_o successor_n of_o alexander_n in_o egypt_n be_v not_o make_v subject_a to_o the_o roman_n till_o the_o time_n of_o augustus_n sol._n grant_v this_o to_o be_v true_a that_o augustus_n do_v extinguish_v the_o last_o successor_n yet_o the_o monarchy_n be_v take_v from_o the_o people_n of_o greece_n before_o when_o the_o roman_n come_v into_o asia_n and_o bring_v all_o those_o eastern_a country_n about_o judea_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o great_a empire_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n for_o the_o people_n of_o greece_n to_o have_v a_o fragment_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o alexander_n remain_v and_o another_o thing_n for_o that_o people_n to_o have_v the_o sovereign_a dominion_n over_o the_o continent_n of_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n and_o this_o they_o have_v till_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n by_o the_o roman_a state_n but_o helvicus_n in_o a_o little_a treatise_n entitle_v chronologia_fw-la universalis_fw-la do_v stiff_o argue_v the_o point_n that_o the_o grecian_a kingdom_n do_v not_o end_v as_o long_o
and_o power_n but_o yet_o further_o they_o that_o stand_v for_o such_o a_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n at_o julius_n caesar_n i_o desire_v they_o will_v answer_v this_o question_n in_o the_o table_n of_o the_o consul_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v the_o space_n of_o 17_o year_n from_o the_o conquest_n of_o judea_n to_o the_o empire_n of_o julius_n caesar._n now_o concern_v this_o number_n of_o year_n it_o must_v be_v either_o reckon_v as_o a_o chasm_n in_o the_o prophetical_a chronologie_n or_o else_o it_o must_v be_v apply_v to_o some_o one_o of_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n but_o it_o can_v be_v reckon_v as_o a_o chasm_n in_o the_o prophetical_a chronologie_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a from_o the_o scripture_n that_o these_o four_o monarchical_a state_n must_v continue_v one_o after_o another_o in_o a_o lineal_a succession_n and_o when_o their_o time_n be_v in_o flux_n and_o succession_n than_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v begin_v therefore_o this_o portion_n of_o time_n from_o the_o conquest_n of_o judea_n to_o the_o monarchy_n of_o caesar_n must_v necessary_o be_v reckon_v as_o appertain_v to_o one_o of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n if_o so_o it_o must_v either_o appertain_v to_o the_o grecian_a kingdom_n type_v by_o the_o brass-metal_n or_o to_o the_o roman_a type_v by_o the_o iron-metal_n for_o none_o will_v be_v so_o absurd_a as_o to_o apply_v it_o either_o to_o babel_n or_o persia_n which_o be_v destroy_v long_o before_o now_o they_o that_o apply_v this_o term_n of_o time_n to_o the_o grecian_a kingdom_n how_o can_v they_o make_v their_o position_n good_a see_v that_o people_n be_v bring_v under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_n but_o if_o you_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o roman_a type_v by_o the_o iron-metal_n you_o give_v up_o the_o cause_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o roman_a begin_v as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o ●…ree-state_n object_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d will_v reply_v the_o four_o pers●…uting_a state_n of_o the_o world_n be_v compact_v together_o into_o one_o image_n but_o the_o roman_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n do_v not_o persecute_v the_o church_n ergo._fw-la sol._n by_o the_o like_a reason_n you_o may_v argue_v that_o cyrus_n do_v not_o begin_v the_o persian_a kingdom_n nor_o alexander_n the_o grecian_a because_o neither_o of_o these_o monarch_n do_v actual_o afflict_v the_o church_n but_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v though_o they_o raise_v no_o actual_a persecution_n in_o their_o own_o person_n yet_o they_o do_v first_o bring_v the_o church_n within_o the_o verge_n of_o that_o dominion_n which_o in_o its_o time_n do_v notable_o afflict_v she_o i_o may_v say_v the_o same_o of_o the_o roman_n for_o if_o it_o may_v be_v suppose_v that_o they_o do_v not_o afflict_v the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n yet_o than_o she_o come_v first_o within_o the_o verge_n of_o that_o dominion_n where_o be_v the_o ●…orest_a persecution_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n there_o be_v again_o and_o again_o mention_v make_v of_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o church_n under_o roman_a tyranny_n and_o when_o she_o be_v to_o bring_v forth_o her_o manchild_n that_o shall_v rule_v all_o nation_n with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n when_o she_o cry_v in_o pain_n to_o be_v deliver_v a_o great_a red_a dragon_n with_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n do_v lie_v in_o wait_n to_o devour_v her_o child_n chap._n 12._o all_o do_v agree_v that_o this_o note_v the_o suffering_n of_o the_o church_n under_o roman_a tyranny_n there_o must_v then_o be_v some_o particular_a instant_n of_o time_n when_o the_o church_n first_o come_v under_o that_o tyranny_n and_o there_o we_o must_v set_v the_o date_n of_o the_o tribulation_n second_o whereas_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o roman_n do_v not_o afflict_v the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n this_o i_o do_v plain_o deny_v for_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o be_v speak_v by_o josephus_n for_o he_o i_o presume_v in_o this_o matter_n be_v able_a to_o give_v we_o the_o best_a information_n thus_o say_v he_o hircanus_n and_o aristobulus_n through_o their_o dissension_n and_o civil_a broil_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o servitude_n that_o fall_v upon_o the_o jew_n for_o we_o have_v lose_v our_o liberty_n and_o have_v be_v subdue_v by_o the_o roman_n antiq._n lib._n 14._o ch_n 8._o and_o further_o he_o add_v that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v lament_v the_o roman_n in_o a_o little_a time_n have_v draw_v from_o we_o more_o than_o 10000_o talent_n and_o the_o royalty_n which_o before_o be_v a_o honour_n reserve_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n have_v be_v bestow_v upon_o man_n of_o obscurity_n antiq._n l._n 14._o c._n 8._o but_o if_o we_o go_v to_o particular_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n famous_o know_v to_o 3●…_n all_o posterit●…_n how_o crassus_n do_v rob_v the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o when_o all_o this_o be_v do_v shall_v we_o say_v that_o the_o jew_n suffer_v nothing_o from_o the_o roman_n during_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o time_n of_o nehemiah_n we_o may_v well_o conceive_v that_o these_o be_v some_o of_o the_o best_a time_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n yet_o mark_v what_o be_v express_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o levi●…es_n behold_v we_o be_v servant_n this_o day_n and_o for_o the_o land_n that_o thou_o give_v unto_o our_o father_n to_o eat_v the_o fruit_n thereof_o and_o the_o good_a thereof_o behold_v we_o be_v servant_n in_o it_o and_o it_o yield_v much_o increase_n unto_o the_o king_n who_o thou_o have_v set_v over_o we_o because_o of_o our_o sin_n also_o they_o have_v dominion_n over_o our_o body_n and_o over_o our_o cattle_n at_o their_o pleasure_n and_o we_o be_v in_o great_a distress_n chap._n 9_o vers_fw-la 36_o 37._o here_o be_v then_o no_o public_a persecution_n for_o religion_n only_o their_o vassalage_n under_o the_o persian_a king_n be_v here_o note_v and_o may_v not_o all_o thing_n be_v right_o apply_v to_o the_o roman_n when_o they_o come_v to_o have_v supreme_a dominion_n in_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n be_v not_o the_o body_n life_n good_n cattle_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o all_o that_o they_o have_v at_o the_o roman_a devotion_n nay_o further_o if_o we_o will_v compare_v the_o time_n that_o go_v before_o with_o those_o that_o come_v after_o we_o shall_v find_v before_o the_o roman_n come_v into_o judea_n that_o the_o jew_n have_v indifferent_o well_o assert_v their_o liberty_n against_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o seleucian_n king_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o story_n of_o the_o macchabee_n that_o rise_v up_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o country_n but_o from_o that_o time_n as_o the_o roman_a legion_n enter_v jerusalem_n and_o a_o conquest_n be_v make_v over_o the_o church_n continent_n the_o jew_n do_v total_o and_o final_o lose_v that_o liberty_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o their_o city_n and_o temple_n and_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v note_v the_o christian_a church_n also_o have_v be_v under_o roman_a tyranny_n more_o or_o less_o to_o this_o very_a day_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n and_o the_o story_n of_o the_o church_n now_o then_o if_o we_o put_v all_o together_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o all_o thing_n neeful_a to_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n in_o daniel_n image_n begin_v to_o be_v applicable_a to_o the_o roman_a state_n at_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o seleucian_n kingdom_n and_o at_o the_o subdue_a the_o territory_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v here_o fix_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n argument_n iu._n where_o the_o story_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v insinuate_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a to_o be_v that_o be_v the_o true_a beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n but_o the_o story_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v insinuate_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a to_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n when_o the_o church_n continent_n come_v first_o within_o the_o verge_n of_o their_o dominion_n therefore_o within_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n when_o the_o church_n continent_n come_v under_o the_o verge_n of_o that_o dominion_n be_v the_o true_a beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n the_o major_n be_v plain_a for_o we_o can_v but_o think_v that_o the_o story_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v right_o expound_v the_o true_a beginning_n of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n and_o for_o the_o minor_a that_o the_o story_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v insinuate_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a to_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n we_o have_v these_o instance_n that_o follow_v the_o evangelist_n be_v to_o write_v the_o
receive_v some_o hint_n of_o the_o four_o metal_n of_o daniel_n image_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o golden_a age_n under_o saturn_n and_o of_o the_o silver_n age_n under_o jupiter_n etc._n etc._n we_o must_v not_o think_v whatsoever_o be_v speak_v by_o this_o poet_n to_o be_v altogether_o a_o fable_n that_o which_o he_o say_v concern_v deucalion_n flood_n in_o many_o particular_n it_o be_v a_o fable_n of_o his_o own_o make_n yet_o in_o the_o general_a ground_n we_o all_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o scripture-truth_n that_o there_o be_v a_o deluge_n to_o drown_v the_o world_n so_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o giant_n and_o of_o their_o heap_v of_o pelion_n upon_o ossa_n we_o may_v conceive_v that_o in_o this_o he_o have_v some_o respect_n to_o the_o giant_n before_o the_o flood_n and_o to_o the_o build_n of_o the_o tower_n of_o babel_n so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o four_o age_n of_o the_o world_n of_o the_o golden_a the_o silver_n the_o brass_n and_o the_o iron-age_n though_o in_o this_o matter_n to_o use_v the_o apostle_n expression_n he_o turn_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n into_o a_o lie_n yet_o in_o the_o ground_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n be_v divide_v into_o four_o age_n and_o these_o age_n be_v figure_v by_o so_o many_o metal_n of_o the_o image_n in_o after_o time_n they_o that_o live_v in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v the_o right_a experience_n of_o thing_n do_v expound_v the_o babylonian_a to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o gold_n the_o mede-persian_a to_o be_v the_o silver_n the_o grecian_a to_o be_v the_o brass_n and_o the_o roman_a to_o be_v the_o iron_n this_o be_v a_o true_a exposition_n in_o the_o main_a but_o in_o some_o particular_n they_o have_v go_v too_o much_o after_o ovid_n in_o his_o metamorphosis_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o babylonian_a monarchy_n be_v represent_v by_o the_o golden-metal_n but_o it_o be_v a_o common_a error_n in_o the_o ancient_n and_o now_o general_o among_o the_o historian_n chronologer_n and_o writer_n to_o begin_v the_o babylonian_a monarchy_n at_o ninus_n upon_o the_o front_n of_o many_o chronological_a table_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o ninus_n be_v picture_v as_o the_o founder_n of_o the_o babylonian_a cyrus_n of_o the_o persian_a alexander_n of_o the_o grecian_a julius_n caesar_n of_o the_o roman_a monarchy_n this_o distribution_n though_o it_o may_v take_v in_o a_o great_a compass_n of_o time_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o some_o chief_a circumstance_n for_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o babylonian_a at_o ninus_n historian_n have_v take_v this_o out_o of_o th●…ir_n own_o head_n and_o not_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o from_o hence_o bodin_n in_o his_o method_n of_o history_n ch_n p._n 7._o have_v take_v occasion_n to_o dispute_v against_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o strike_v out_o the_o truth_n because_o some_o have_v mingle_v their_o own_o invention_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o have_v take_v this_o advantage_n upon_o the_o private_a error_n of_o some_o who_o have_v stand_v for_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o main_a but_o the_o latter_a expositor_n do_v decline_v this_o error_n of_o ninus_n and_o do_v pitch_n upon_o this_o that_o nabuchadnezzar_n be_v the_o head_n of_o gold_n and_o that_o the_o babylonian_a kingdom_n do_v begin_v from_o his_o monarchy_n they_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o the_o scripture_n do_v chief_o point_v to_o those_o several_a empire_n that_o be_v to_o stand_v in_o fullness_n of_o power_n one_o after_o another_o in_o those_o country_n where_o sometime_o the_o king_n of_o the_o lineage_n of_o david_n do_v bear_v rule_n these_o be_v the_o most_o approve_a interpreter_n which_o i_o so_o call_v because_o they_o go_v according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o scripture_n now_o according_a to_o their_o ground_n it_o follow_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o the_o roman_a must_v begin_v as_o the_o four_o kingdom_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o free-state_n when_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o country_n adjoin_v come_v under_o the_o lordship_n and_o dominion_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n and_o whereas_o in_o the_o chronographical_a table_n julius_n caesar_n be_v set_v forth_o as_o the_o founder_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n this_o be_v as_o false_a a_o imagination_n as_o that_o of_o ninus_n first_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o every_o metal-kingdom_n do_v rise_v and_o increase_v by_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o go_v before_o now_o what_o part_n or_o parcel_n of_o the_o grecian_a empire_n do_v julius_n caesar_n bring_v under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_n second_o what_o part_n or_o parcel_n of_o the_o nation_n about_o the_o border_n of_o the_o church_n do_v he_o bring_v under_o the_o roman_a obedience_n if_o we_o speak_v in_o a_o latitude_n caesar_n do_v change_v the_o free-state_n into_o the_o government_n by_o one_o yet_o to_o speak_v accurate_o the_o roman_a do_v not_o begin_v then_o as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n but_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pompey_n when_o the_o jewish_a church_n come_v under_o the_o obedience_n of_o that_o nation_n and_o so_o our_o argument_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o best_a expositor_n for_o the_o true_a beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n now_o then_o to_o gather_v all_o into_o one_o sum_n we_o may_v conclude_v the_o roman_a to_o begin_v as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n when_o the_o church_n come_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o that_o people_n this_o be_v demonstrate_v first_o by_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o three_o former_a metal-kingdom_n which_o do_v begin_v each_o one_o as_o the_o church_n come_v under_o their_o dominion_n second_o by_o the_o end_n of_o the_o grecian_a kingdom_n type_v by_o the_o brass-metal_n where_o the_o grecian_a end_v there_o the_o roman_a begin_v three_o by_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n which_o begin_v to_o be_v applicable_a to_o the_o roman_a in_o the_o time_n aforemention_v four_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o evangelist_n s_o luke_n which_o do_v insinuate_v such_o a_o beginning_n five_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o latter_a and_o most_o approve_a interpreter_n which_o be_v right_o lay_v do_v necessary_o prove_v such_o a_o beginning_n also_o have_v thus_o lay_v the_o foundation_n i_o shall_v now_o proceed_v to_o the_o building_n but_o there_o be_v some_o few_o objection_n that_o yet_o remain_v to_o be_v answer_v object_n 1._o mr_n mede_n stand_v upon_o it_o that_o the_o roman_a come_v up_o by_o the_o same_o degree_n as_o the_o grecian_a go_v down_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o determinate_a and_o set_a time_n of_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n sol._n what_o he_o speak_v in_o his_o apostasy_n of_o the_o lattertime_n concern_v the_o gradual_a increase_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o roman_n we_o do_v yield_v to_o be_v a_o truth_n in_o the_o main_a but_o we_o here_o speak_v of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a in_o a_o more_o strict_a sense_n in_o that_o acception_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n and_o here_o as_o there_o be_v a_o determinate_a time_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o babylonian_a persian_a and_o grecian_a empire_n so_o there_o must_v be_v a_o determinate_a beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n second_o daniel_n see_v in_o the_o vision_n the_o four_o beast_n come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o sea_n one_o after_o another_o and_o the_o four_o beast_n last_o of_o all_o there_o must_v then_o be_v some_o determinate_a time_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o four_o empire_n three_o it_o be_v the_o plot_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o four_o empire_n to_o decipher_v so_o many_o period_n of_o time_n according_a to_o this_o rule_n if_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a beginning_n of_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n there_o will_v be_v a_o chasm_n there_o will_v be_v some_o part_n of_o time_n which_o will_v be_v long_o to_o no_o metal_n of_o the_o image_n for_o as_o mr_n mede_n himself_o do_v allow_v the_o image_n do_v comprehend_v four_o great_a revolution_n of_o time_n to_o begin_v one_o after_o another_o in_o a_o orderly_a succession_n these_o be_v his_o own_o word_n apost_n pag._n 69._o for_o the_o true_a account_n of_o the_o time_n in_o scripture_n we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o that_o secret_a calendar_n and_o great_a almanac_n of_o prophecy_n the_o four_o kingdom_n of_o daniel_n which_o be_v a_o prophetical_a chronologie_n of_o time_n measure_v by_o the_o succession_n of_o four_o principal_a kingdom_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o captivity_n of_o israel_n until_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v finish_v a_o course_n of_o time_n during_o which_o the_o church_n and_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n together_o
not_o to_o reveal_v this_o only_a to_o the_o jew_n but_o to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o gentile_n also_o this_o latter_a may_v be_v prove_v from_o the_o person_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n to_o who_o this_o secret_n be_v reveal_v for_o if_o it_o have_v only_o concern_v the_o national_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n will_v raise_v up_o a_o kingdom_n that_o never_o shall_v be_v destroy_v why_o be_v this_o deliver_v to_o nabuchadnezzar_n a_o heathen_a man_n and_o a_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n when_o the_o lord_n do_v reveal_v to_o pharaoh_n the_o dream_n of_o the_o seven_o fat_a cow_n and_o after_o the_o dream_n of_o seven_o lean_a cow_n this_o be_v not_o only_o discover_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n but_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o mankind_n so_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o four_o great_a empire_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o last_o empire_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o reveal_v only_o to_o nabuchadnezzar_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v understand_v the_o truth_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a habitable_a world_n under_o nebuchadnezzar_n dominion_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o that_o which_o god_n do_v intend_v to_o do_v second_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o revelation_n to_o nabuchadnezzar_n which_o be_v to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v observe_v it_o first_o if_o you_o consider_v the_o person_n nabuchadnezzar_n dream_v a_o dream_n second_o the_o way_n of_o god_n deal_n with_o he_o he_o forget_v the_o dream_n and_o therefore_o a_o great_a trouble_n fall_v upon_o his_o spirit_n three_o his_o call_n for_o the_o wiseman_n of_o babylon_n which_o city_n in_o these_o time_n be_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n now_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v but_o all_o that_o live_v within_o the_o verge_n of_o so_o large_a a_o dominion_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o hearken_v after_o such_o a_o thing_n special_o when_o they_o shall_v hear_v of_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o king_n and_o of_o the_o edict_n to_o kill_v all_o the_o wiseman_n of_o babylon_n here_o be_v a_o matter_n set_v out_o in_o the_o view_n of_o all_o asia_n as_o it_o be_v to_o prove_v three_o particular_n first_o that_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v the_o true_a god_n second_o that_o he_o will_v set_v up_o four_o great_a change_n of_o empire_n in_o the_o world_n three_o that_o in_o the_o last_o succession_n of_o empire_n he_o will_v set_v up_o a_o kingdom_n that_o never_o shall_v be_v destroy_v these_o thing_n be_v propound_v not_o only_o for_o the_o church_n but_o for_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o whole_a habitable_a earth_n under_o the_o babylonian_a empire_n that_o then_o be_v and_o for_o the_o age_n follow_v three_o if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o story_n of_o the_o evangelist_n we_o do_v read_v that_o the_o evangelist_n s_o matthew_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o when_o the_o lord_n christ_n be_v bear_v in_o bethleem_n in_o the_o day_n of_o herod_n the_o king_n wiseman_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n matth._n 2._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o here_o interpreter_n upon_o the_o place_n do_v raise_v many_o question_n first_o who_o these_o wiseman_n be_v second_o why_o be_v it_o reveal_v to_o they_o by_o a_o star_n three_o why_o do_v the_o star_n guide_v they_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o then_o vanish_v out_o of_o 〈◊〉_d these_o question_n be_v propound_v by_o interpreter_n and_o they_o do_v give_v very_o learned_a and_o solid_a answer_n to_o they_o only_o there_o be_v a_o question_n to_o which_o i_o do_v not_o yet_o find_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n and_o that_o be_v this_o why_o be_v this_o matter_n reveal_v to_o wiseman_n in_o the_o east_n rather_o than_o to_o any_o other_o nation_n profession_n or_o sect_n among_o the_o gentile_n spanhemius_fw-la do_v handle_v this_o point_n in_o his_o dubia_fw-la evangelica_n part_n 2._o dub_v 31._o pag._n 326._o and_o he_o do_v come_v to_o this_o issue_n in_o the_o close_a concludimus_fw-la itaque_fw-la causum_fw-la vocationis_fw-la magorum_n nequaquam_fw-la in_o illis_fw-la suisse_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o solâ_fw-la dei_fw-la vocantis_fw-la bonitate_fw-la &_o illos_fw-la ex_fw-la merâ_fw-la ejus_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la vocatos_fw-la sive_fw-la absolutè_fw-la eorum_fw-la vocatio_fw-la consideretur_fw-la sive_fw-la comparatè_fw-la quod_fw-la enim_fw-la &_o vocati_fw-la &_o vocati_fw-la prae_fw-la aliis_fw-la dei_fw-la miserentis_fw-la fuit_fw-la illorum_fw-la potius_fw-la quam_fw-la aliorum_fw-la et_fw-la haec_fw-la causa_fw-la causarum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o summa_fw-la ratio_fw-la pag._n 329._o here_o i_o do_v agree_v that_o the_o call_v of_o the_o wiseman_n do_v chief_o depend_v upon_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o cause_n and_o the_o chief_a reason_n why_o they_o be_v call_v and_o why_o they_o be_v call_v before_o any_o other_o but_o yet_o with_o submission_n to_o a_o better_a judgement_n i_o think_v there_o lie_v a_o plain_a reason_n in_o the_o scripture_n why_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v reveal_v to_o the_o wiseman_n of_o the_o east_n rather_o than_o to_o any_o other_o gentile_n for_o when_o the_o lord_n have_v a_o purpose_n to_o reveal_v four_o great_a change_n of_o time_n to_o the_o world_n and_o particular_o the_o time_n of_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o son_n he_o have_v appoint_v in_o his_o providence_n that_o the_o wiseman_n of_o babylon_n who_o profession_n it_o be_v to_o understand_v the_o change_n of_o time_n that_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o these_o thing_n but_o more_o special_o of_o the_o time_n when_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o but_o because_o they_o can_v not_o know_v this_o by_o their_o own_o strength_n the_o lord_n do_v reveal_v it_o to_o they_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o daniel_n that_o he_o will_v set_v up_o four_o kingdom_n over_o the_o earth_n whereof_o the_o babylonian_a in_o be_v be_v the_o first_o and_o then_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n he_o will_v set_v up_o a_o kingdom_n that_o never_o shall_v be_v destroy_v in_o a_o word_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o these_o change_n of_o time_n be_v reveal_v to_o the_o wiseman_n of_o the_o east_n because_o it_o do_v suit_n with_o their_o profession_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o such_o thing_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v once_o reveal_v in_o particular_a the_o time_n of_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o son_n to_o the_o wiseman_n of_o the_o east_n when_o the_o lord_n christ_n be_v bear_v at_o bethleem_n in_o judea_n in_o the_o day_n of_o herod_n the_o king_n he_o do_v call_v that_o sort_n of_o man_n in_o special_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o that_o which_o be_v foretell_v because_o these_o thing_n be_v reveal_v to_o they_o they_o be_v call_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o of_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o kingdom_n from_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v we_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o metal-kingdom_n do_v concern_v both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o brightman_n grasserus_n and_o other_o learned_a man_n shall_v take_v the_o little_a horn_n for_o mahomet_n because_o the_o country_n of_o judea_n be_v now_o under_o the_o turk_n many_o other_o argument_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o prove_v that_o neither_o mahomet_n nor_o the_o turk_n can_v possible_o be_v resemble_v by_o the_o type_n of_o the_o little_a horn._n the_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n and_o the_o whole_a collection_n of_o circumstance_n do_v altogether_o pitch_v upon_o the_o papacy_n which_o arise_v after_o the_o division_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n into_o ten_o inferior_a kingdom_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n 666_o year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n this_o be_v the_o true_a application_n of_o the_o time_n to_o the_o story_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o natural_a sense_n of_o john_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v 666._o now_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o interpretation_n we_o will_v prove_v it_o first_o from_o the_o whole_a scope_n of_o the_o text_n rev._n 13._o second_o from_o the_o drift_n of_o the_o spirit_n rev._n 17._o three_o from_o the_o whole_a harmony_n of_o the_o prophecy_n in_o the_o chief_a and_o remarkable_a circumstance_n last_o from_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2_o thess._n 2._o and_o of_o these_o in_o their_o order_n chap._n viii_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o interpretation_n be_v prove_v from_o the_o remarkable_a circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n itself_o revel_v 13._o 16_o 17_o 18._o there_o be_v many_o excellent_a and_o precious_a truth_n in_o the_o general_n which_o we_o can_v always_o avouch_v that_o the_o spirit_n
have_v be_v introduce_v in_o the_o latter_a time_n but_o now_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o have_v be_v in_o hatch_n in_o all_o age_n almost_o down_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n till_o in_o the_o 666_o year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n it_o begin_v public_o to_o be_v establish_v under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n and_o here_o be_v the_o true_a beginning_n of_o the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o of_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o name_n four_o the_o mark_n in_o the_o forehead_n and_o in_o the_o right_a hand_n be_v a_o convertible_a and_o reciprocal_a note_n to_o distinguish_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n from_o other_o man_n and_o such_o a_o convertible_a note_n be_v the_o public_a profession_n of_o a_o roman_n catholic_n and_o therefore_o many_o of_o their_o chief_a writer_n do_v lay_v down_o three_o note_n to_o prove_v a_o true_a church_n by_o verae_fw-la fidei_fw-la professione_n by_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n sacramentorum_fw-la communione_fw-la by_o participate_v of_o the_o sacrament_n pontifici_fw-la romano_n tanquam_fw-la legitimo_fw-la pastori_fw-la subjectione_n by_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o their_o lawful_a pastor_n five_o the_o mark_n in_o the_o forehead_n and_o the_o right_a hand_n must_v be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o be_v in_o open_a view_n and_o in_o common_a use_n for_o so_o do_v these_o figurative_a expression_n import_v it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o he_o cause_v all_o to_o receive_v a_o mark_n in_o their_o arm_n or_o breast_n or_o foot_n or_o leg_n or_o any_o other_o member_n of_o the_o body_n but_o in_o the_o forehead_n which_o be_v in_o open_a view_n and_o in_o the_o right_a hand_n as_o be_v that_o part_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v of_o most_o common_a use_n now_o what_o be_v there_o among_o that_o society_n of_o man_n which_o be_v of_o more_o common_a use_n and_o public_a view_n than_o the_o profession_n of_o a_o roman_n catholic_n experience_n do_v plain_o show_v that_o none_o can_v buy_v nor_o sell_v nor_o hold_v land_n and_o possession_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o do_v acknowledge_v this_o universal_a headship_n six_o the_o mark_n in_o the_o forehead_n and_o in_o the_o right_a hand_n be_v in_o express_v and_o significant_a term_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o mark_n of_o his_o name_n they_o have_v no_o rest_n day_n nor_o night_n that_o worship_n the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o receive_v the_o mark_n of_o his_o name_n chap._n 14._o vers_fw-la 11._o now_o if_o you_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o profession_n of_o a_o roman_n catholic_n all_o thing_n will_v agree_v for_o what_o be_v a_o roman_n catholic_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o do_v make_v it_o the_o chief_a and_o main_a article_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o subject_v his_o conscience_n to_o the_o law_n make_v by_o that_o authority_n and_o this_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n to_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o universal_a headship_n sovereign_a power_n and_o supreme_a dominion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o faith_n and_o profession_n of_o a_o roman_n catholic_n the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n be_v that_o which_o give_v foundation_n to_o the_o mark_n or_o profession_n à_fw-la priori_fw-la and_o the_o mark_n or_o profession_n be_v that_o which_o declare_v the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n à_fw-la posteriori_fw-la and_o therefore_o in_o significant_a term_n it_o be_v call_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o name_n seven_o the_o mark_n in_o the_o forehead_n and_o in_o the_o right_a hand_n be_v that_o which_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n do_v assume_v to_o themselves_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o the_o great_a honour_n and_o dignity_n it_o be_v not_o a_o brand_n or_o nickname_n put_v upon_o they_o by_o their_o enemy_n but_o that_o which_o themselves_o do_v voluntary_o profess_v as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o the_o revelation_n now_o such_o a_o name_n be_v the_o profession_n of_o a_o roman_n catholic_n the_o roman_a church_n comprehend_v all_o those_o nation_n language_n and_o people_n that_o agree_v in_o the_o same_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n under_o the_o pope_n the_o head_n and_o every_o member_n of_o this_o church_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o make_v this_o as_o the_o principal_a badge_n of_o his_o profession_n to_o adhere_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n eight_o the_o mark_n in_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o in_o the_o forehead_n must_v be_v so_o expound_v that_o in_o receive_v of_o this_o man_n must_v be_v guilty_a of_o great_a sin_n against_o christ_n and_o so_o consequent_o liable_a to_o most_o grievous_a judgement_n except_o they_o repent_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v express_v that_o such_o shall_v be_v torment_v day_n and_o night_n that_o worship_n the_o beast_n and_o receive_v his_o mark._n sure_o then_o that_o act_n of_o receive_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n because_o the_o lord_n christ_n do_v threaten_v it_o with_o so_o heavy_a a_o judgement_n now_o if_o you_o take_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o roman_n catholic_n as_o he_o profess_v his_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o be_v the_o great_a derogation_n that_o can_v be_v to_o christ_n to_o supplant_v he_o in_o his_o universal_a headship_n for_o it_o be_v his_o peculiar_a and_o incommunicable_a privilege_n to_o be_v the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n his_o mystical_a body_n therefore_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o do_v ascribe_v this_o to_o himself_o or_o to_o any_o other_o do_v sin_n against_o the_o kingly_a office_n of_o christ_n and_o do_v what_o in_o he_o lie_v to_o dethrone_v and_o put_v christ_n from_o his_o sovereign_a dignity_n a_o wife_n may_v be_v guilty_a of_o many_o offence_n against_o her_o husband_n but_o that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o capital_a when_o she_o do_v take_v another_o in_o his_o room_n for_o that_o be_v in_o a_o sense_n to_o break_v the_o bond_n and_o to_o cast_v he_o off_o from_o be_v her_o husband_n when_o she_o do_v give_v herself_o to_o another_o man_n a_o roman_a catholic_n then_o when_o he_o do_v profess_v his_o allegiance_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n this_o public_a profession_n of_o he_o be_v rebellion_n and_o high_a treason_n against_o the_o lord_n christ_n the_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n this_o do_v supplant_v he_o of_o his_o kingly_a power_n and_o dignity_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v threaten_v this_o sin_n with_o such_o grievous_a judgement_n those_o word_n therefore_o that_o be_v add_v as_o a_o epiphonema_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o revelation_n whosoever_o shall_v add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o this_o book_n god_n will_v add_v to_o he_o the_o plague_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v take_v away_o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n of_o this_o prophecy_n god_n will_v take_v away_o his_o part_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o from_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n chap._n 22._o vers_fw-la 18._o 19_o interpreter_n do_v usual_o apply_v this_o place_n to_o those_o that_o bring_v in_o tradition_n but_o i_o think_v that_o here_o be_v a_o more_o special_a sense_n intend_v suitable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o book_n for_o the_o principal_a scope_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o kingly_a office_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o they_o that_o set_v up_o another_o head_n of_o the_o church_n they_o do_v add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o this_o book_n and_o god_n will_v add_v to_o they_o the_o plague_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n so_o they_o that_o take_v away_o from_o the_o kingly_a office_n of_o christ_n they_o do_v in_o a_o more_o special_a sense_n take_v away_o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o this_o book_n and_o therefore_o god_n will_v take_v away_o their_o part_n out_o of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o from_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o book_n if_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o i_o can_v but_o admire_v at_o hugo_n grotius_n a_o man_n of_o great_a learning_n in_o these_o last_o time_n who_o in_o his_o tract_n de_fw-la antichristo_fw-la do_v speak_v very_o favourable_o of_o the_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n
of_o man_n that_o have_v persevere_v and_o hold_v out_o for_o christ_n against_o the_o power_n and_o headship_n of_o antichrist_n in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o that_o tribulation_n and_o yet_o as_o this_o matter_n be_v one_o it_o be_v branch_v into_o several_a consideration_n first_o if_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o papacy_n as_o a_o state_n or_o government_n afflict_v the_o saint_n so_o it_o be_v call_v a_o beast_n like_v to_o one_o of_o the_o beast_n in_o daniel_n second_o if_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o universal_a headship_n wherein_o the_o form_n and_o essence_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v consist_v this_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n three_o if_o you_o speak_v of_o that_o universal_a headship_n as_o a_o representative_a of_o that_o sovereign_a majesty_n that_o be_v former_o lose_v in_o rome_n imperial_a and_o now_o repair_v in_o rome_n papal_n this_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n four_o if_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o this_o universal_a headship_n in_o the_o society_n of_o man_n this_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n five_o if_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n when_o this_o universal_a headship_n begin_v visible_o and_o remarkable_o to_o appear_v this_o be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o more_o special_o of_o his_o name_n and_o headship_n all_o these_o be_v so_o many_o distinct_a apocalyptical_a consideration_n which_o agree_v in_o one_o main_a truth_n in_o the_o general_a and_o thus_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o three_o branch_n thereof_o we_o will_v now_o come_v to_o speak_v more_o brief_o of_o the_o other_o particular_n because_o they_o be_v more_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v second_o for_o the_o lawmaker_n the_o power_n by_o and_o through_o which_o he_o cause_v all_o to_o receive_v the_o mark_n this_o be_v a_o spiritual_a christ-like_a efficacy_n prevail_v in_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n to_o make_v they_o subject_a to_o his_o law_n it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n that_o the_o most_o high_a god_n do_v give_v to_o he_o a_o kingdom_n and_o for_o the_o majesty_n that_o he_o give_v he_o all_o people_n nation_n and_o language_n tremble_v and_o fear_v before_o he_o who_o he_o will_v he_o slay_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o keep_v alive_a chap._n 5._o ver_fw-la 18_o 19_o so_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o revelation_n have_v the_o same_o transcendent_a power_n he_o cause_v all_o to_o receive_v a_o mark_n whether_o rich_a or_o poor_a bond_n or_o free_a male_a or_o female_a he_o compel_v all_o to_o yield_v obedience_n as_o they_o sometime_o do_v that_o be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n but_o here_o be_v the_o difference_n the_o power_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n be_v more_o external_a over_o the_o body_n of_o man_n this_o be_v more_o internal_a over_o their_o mind_n and_o conscience_n and_o by_o consequence_n over_o their_o body_n also_o second_o they_o tha●…_n be_v under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n have_v they_o be_v leave_v to_o their_o free_a choice_n they_o will_v have_v be_v glad_a to_o have_v enjoy_v their_o liberty_n but_o now_o for_o those_o that_o live_v in_o subjection_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o matter_n be_v far_o otherwise_o with_o they_o they_o will_v not_o be_v free_a if_o they_o may_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n divide_v in_o interest_n and_o in_o many_o civil_a respect_n all_o of_o they_o can_v agree_v in_o this_o one_o thing_n to_o give_v their_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n rev._n ch._n 17._o they_o think_v they_o can_v not_o be_v save_v unless_o in_o all_o realm_n there_o be_v a_o universal_a subjection_n to_o this_o headship_n give_v by_o christ_n himself_o as_o they_o think_v to_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n and_o for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o public_a institution_n of_o this_o universal_a headship_n there_o be_v some_o preparation_n and_o previous_a work_n towards_o the_o set_n up_o of_o this_o power_n but_o there_o be_v no_o public_a establishment_n thereof_o till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o mr._n fox_n in_o his_o act_n and_o monument_n speak_v concern_v this_o matter_n pag._n 108._o col._n 2._o but_o rome_n say_v he_o will_v not_o so_o soon_o lose_v the_o supremacy_n once_o give_v as_o the_o giver_n lose_v his_o life_n for_o ever_o since_o from_o that_o day_n she_o have_v hold_v defend_v and_o maintain_v the_o same_o still_o and_o yet_o do_v to_o this_o present_a day_n by_o all_o force_n and_o policy_n possible_a and_o thus_o much_o concern_v boniface_n who_o by_o the_o word_n of_o gregory_n we_o may_v call_v the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n for_o as_o gregory_n bring_v in_o the_o style_n servus_n servorum_fw-la so_o this_o boniface_n bring_v into_o their_o head_n first_o volumus_fw-la &_o mandamus_fw-la statuimus_fw-la &_o praecipimus_fw-la that_o be_v we_o will_v and_o command_n we_o enjoin_v and_o charge_v you_o the_o same_o be_v mention_v by_o paraens_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o revelation_n chap._n 6._o ver_fw-la 12._o from_o whence_o i_o gather_v as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v have_v a_o mandatory_a power_n in_o and_o over_o the_o church_n so_o this_o first_o begin_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n in_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o universal_a headship_n three_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o person_n who_o they_o be_v that_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o power_n he_o command_v all_o both_o small_a and_o great_a rich_a and_o poor_a to_o receive_v a_o mark._n the_o greatness_n of_o rich_a man_n can_v procure_v a_o toleration_n neither_o can_v the_o meanness_n of_o poor_a man_n exempt_v they_o by_o their_o poverty_n bullinger_n upon_o the_o place_n speak_v very_o pithy_o we_o see_v say_v he_o that_o emperor_n king_n duke_n marquess_n earl_n baron_n realm_n country_n city_n patriarch_n archbishop_n bishop_n prelate_n doctor_n clerk_n and_o lay_v man_n obey_v he_o and_o also_o man_n of_o the_o great_a power_n riches_n wisdom_n together_o with_o the_o poor_a people_n there_o be_v no_o such_o kingdom_n and_o so_o diverse_o compact_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n no_o not_o among_o the_o mahometan_n and_o all_o these_o be_v willing_o subject_a to_o the_o seat_n yea_o they_o have_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o can_v well_o live_v and_o that_o they_o can_v be_v save_v unless_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n so_o far_o bullinger_n from_o hence_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o event_n do_v full_o answer_v the_o prophecy_n for_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n how_o all_o the_o world_n have_v worship_v the_o beast_n and_o receive_v his_o mark._n and_o whereas_o some_o to_o illude_v this_o truth_n have_v plead_v that_o the_o popish_a church_n in_o france_n do_v not_o own_o the_o pope_n for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n we_o will_v easy_o grant_v that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v so_o strict_o oblige_v to_o the_o pope_n chair_n in_o some_o temporal_a respect_n yet_o it_o be_v too_o plain_a that_o his_o authority_n be_v set_v up_o in_o their_o conscience_n and_o that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o law_n four_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o punishment_n to_o be_v inflict_v upon_o those_o that_o have_v not_o the_o mark_n in_o the_o forehead_n and_o in_o the_o right-hand_a they_o be_v forbid_v to_o buy_v or_o sell._n mr._n mede_n do_v take_v this_o for_o excommunication_n or_o cast_v out_o of_o church-fellowship_n but_o rather_o the_o word_n signify_v a_o cut_n off_o from_o all_o civil_a commerce_n among_o man_n yea_o if_o we_o compare_v the_o scripture_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o it_o be_v present_a death_n for_o any_o man_n to_o refuse_v to_o have_v the_o mark_v in_o the_o forehead_n and_o in_o the_o right-hand_a therefore_o when_o john_n see_v the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o be_v behead_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n that_o have_v not_o worship_v the_o image_n nor_o receive_v the_o mark_n chap._n 20._o ver_fw-la 4._o he_o do_v plain_o show_v that_o the_o behead_v be_v for_o the_o non-worship_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o for_o the_o not_o receive_v of_o the_o mark_n we_o may_v conclude_v then_o when_o man_n be_v exempt_v from_o bu●…ing_n and_o sell_v this_o be_v a_o synecdoche_n by_o this_o one_o all_o other_o kind_n of_o punishment_n whatsoever_o be_v understand_v and_o thus_o we_o have_v see_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o law_n the_o lawmaker_n the_o person_n subject_a to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o penalty_n upon_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v refuse_v subjection_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o several_a particular_n which_o concern_v the_o right_a calculation_n of_o the_o number_n first_o for_o the_o person_n who_o it_o be_v that_o must_v make_v the_o discovery_n it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o have_v wisdom_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n
the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o church_n there_o be_v many_o excellent_a thing_n that_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o church_n in_o the_o way_n of_o reproof_n in_o the_o way_n of_o advice_n and_o in_o the_o way_n of_o comfort_n yet_o only_o he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n to_o hear_v will_v understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o his_o word_n and_o so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n when_o it_o be_v say_v here_o be_v wisdom_n let_v he_o that_o have_v understanding_n count_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n this_o imply_v that_o this_o matter_n must_v be_v find_v out_o by_o some_o subtlety_n of_o observation_n the_o person_n that_o do_v inquire_v must_v be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o have_v wisdom_n second_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o discovery_n it_o must_v be_v by_o calculation_n of_o the_o number_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v he_o count_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o number_v as_o be_v by_o counter_n or_o stone_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lapillus_fw-la calculus_fw-la but_o in_o the_o ordinary_a and_o common_a use_n it_o do_v promiscuous_o note_v any_o kind_n of_o reckon_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v concern_v the_o man_n that_o go_v about_o to_o build_v a_o tower_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o count_v or_o reckon_v the_o cost_n luke_n 14._o 28._o and_o so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n there_o be_v a_o computation_n or_o way_n of_o account_n to_o find_v out_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o number_n but_o here_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o interpreter_n some_o go_v to_o the_o extraction_n of_o the_o root_n some_o to_o the_o numeral_a letter_n of_o the_o name_n lateinos_n but_o of_o these_o we_o have_v speak_v in_o part_n already_o and_o we_o shall_v further_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o this_o way_n in_o the_o process_n of_o the_o discourse_n we_o will_v therefore_o come_v positive_o and_o plain_o to_o set_v down_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o familiar_a in_o the_o prediction_n of_o prophetical_a scripture_n then_o for_o the_o spirit_n to_o foretell_v remarkable_a occurrence_n by_o a_o definite_a number_n of_o year_n to_o every_o such_o occurrence_n of_o many_o example_n that_o may_v be_v give_v take_v these_o few_o when_o the_o lord_n will_v give_v noah_n warning_n concern_v the_o flood_n he_o tell_v he_o that_o such_o a_o number_n of_o year_n shall_v fulfil_v their_o course_n and_o then_o the_o flood_n shall_v come_v my_o spirit_n shall_v not_o always_o str●…ve_v with_o man_n yet_o his_o day_n shall_v be_v a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n gen._n 6._o 3._o so_o when_o he_o make_v a_o promise_n to_o abraham_n that_o he_o will_v give_v to_o his_o posterity_n the_o land_n of_o canaan_n for_o a_o inheritance_n he_o tell_v he_o that_o 400_o year_n shall_v run_v complete_a to_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o promise_n thy_o seed_n shall_v be_v a_o stranger_n in_o a_o land_n that_o be_v not_o they_o and_o shall_v serve_v they_o and_o they_o shall_v afflict_v they_o four_o hundred_o year_n and_o afterward_o they_o shall_v come_v out_o with_o great_a substance_n gen._n 15._o 13_o 14_o 15._o further_o when_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v carry_v captive_a into_o babylon_n in_o the_o time_n of_o je●…kims_v captivity_n to_o these_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n do_v send_v a_o consolatory_a letter_n in_o which_o he_o do_v declare_v two_o thing_n of_o eminent_a note_n their_o remarkable_a deliverance_n and_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o babylonian_a empire_n yet_o withal_o ●…e_n do_v declare_v that_o seventy_o year_n must_v first_o be_v fulfil_v and_o accomplish_v at_o babylon_n before_o their_o deliverance_n wi●…_n come_v and_o these_o nation_n shall_v serve_v the_o king_n of_o babylon_n seventy_o year_n and_o when_o seventy_o year_n be_v accomplish_v then_o will_v i_o visit_v the_o king_n of_o babylon_n jer._n 25._o ver_fw-la 11_o 12._o and_o again_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n after_o seventy_o year_n be_v accomplish_v at_o babylon_n i_o will_v visit_v you_o and_o perform_v my_o good_a word_n towards_o you_o in_o cause_v you_o to_o return_v unto_o this_o place_n jer._n 29._o 10_o 11._o last_o of_o all_o when_o daniel_n himself_o be_v m●…sing_v on_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o give_v himself_o to_o understand_v the_o time_n and_o to_o pray_v in_o faith_n for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o promise_n he_o have_v a_o further_a discovery_n of_o the_o seventy_o week_n that_o shall_v lead_v he_o to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o messiah_n to_o his_o passion_n to_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n among_o all_o nation_n and_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n now_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v show_v to_o he_o that_o there_o must_v be_v seventy_o seven_n or_o seventy_o week_n of_o year_n or_o 490_o year_n in_o all_o to_o begin_v and_o commence_v from_o the_o build_n of_o the_o second_o temple_n which_o line_n of_o year_n if_o he_o follow_v it_o will_v bring_v he_o to_o that_o time_n when_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v by_o these_o example_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o be_v a_o frequent_a thing_n in_o prophetical_a scripture_n to_o foretell_v future_a occurrence_n and_o to_o show_v the_o number_n of_o year_n that_o shall_v pass_v before_o the_o event_n if_o this_o be_v so_o we_o have_v a_o rational_a ground_n to_o build_v upon_o when_o we_o make_v 666_o the_o number_n of_o year_n to_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o for_o the_o further_o clear_v of_o the_o truth_n that_o the_o study_n and_o the_o calculation_n of_o the_o prophetical_a year_n be_v say_v to_o be_v wisdom_n we_o can_v make_v this_o appear_v by_o some_o special_a example_n out_o of_o scripture_n we_o read_v in_o the_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o darius_n the_o son_n of_o ahashuerosh_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o mede_n which_o be_v make_v king_n over_o the_o realm_n of_o the_o chaldaean_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n i_o daniel_n understand_v by_o book_n the_o number_n of_o the_o year_n whereof_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v to_o jeremiah_n the_o prophet_n that_o he_o will_v accomplish_v seventy_o year_n in_o the_o desolation_n of_o jerusalem_n dan._n 9_o 1_o 2_o 3._o concern_v darius_n the_o mede_n there_o be_v a_o great_a controversy_n among_o chronologer_n whether_o he_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o chaldaean_n by_o conquest_n or_o by_o free_a election_n but_o let_v that_o point_n be_v what_o it_o will_v be_v all_o do_v agree_v in_o it_o that_o darius_n the_o mede_n reign_v immediate_o before_o cyrus_n the_o persian_a and_o it_o be_v as_o clear_v also_o by_o the_o story_n of_o the_o time_n that_o the_o first_o year_n of_o darius_n the_o mede_n be_v upon_o the_o very_a dawn_n of_o the_o church_n deliverance_n in_o this_o year_n than_o daniel_n give_v himself_o to_o study_v by_o book_n the_o number_n of_o year_n that_o the_o lord_n will_v accomplish_v in_o the_o church_n desolation_n in_o he_o then_o by_o the_o way_n let_v we_o note_v that_o they_o who_o have_v the_o great_a fullness_n of_o spirit_n be_v chief_o employ_v in_o the_o meditation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o they_o who_o be_v conversant_a in_o the_o prophetical_a scripture_n be_v many_o time_n help_v out_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n by_o the_o sacred_a and_o the_o civil_a story_n but_o now_o let_v we_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o process_n and_o order_n of_o his_o meditation_n first_o he_o do_v lay_v it_o as_o a_o general_a ground_n that_o seventy_o year_n must_v be_v expire_v before_o deliverance_n will_v come_v but_o now_o say_v he_o the_o seventy_o year_n of_o the_o desolation_n of_o jerusalem_n begin_v almost_o to_o be_v fulfil_v therefore_o in_o these_o time_n we_o be_v almost_o come_v to_o the_o promise_a deliverance_n and_o thereupon_o he_o do_v pray_v with_o great_a faith_n in_o the_o promise_v of_o god_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o chapter_n here_o now_o in_o this_o syllogism_n daniel_n do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o two_o know_a number_n he_o do_v find_v out_o a_o three_o unknown_a his_o major_a proposition_n be_v the_o prophecy_n of_o jeremy_n his_o assumption_n be_v his_o own_o experience_n and_o the_o chaldee_n register_n of_o the_o time_n and_o his_o conclusion_n be_v the_o approach_n of_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o whole_a operation_n in_o compute_v the_o time_n be_v by_o wisdom_n for_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n i_o daniel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d understand_v by_o book_n piscator_fw-la
number_n of_o year_n this_o will_v agree_v with_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o in_o the_o know_a and_o most_o familiar_a use_n that_o be_v which_o teach_v we_o to_o number_v period_n cycle_n and_o great_a revolution_n of_o year_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o art_n of_o computation_n but_o if_o all_o this_o will_v not_o give_v satisfaction_n if_o any_o shall_v still_o say_v that_o this_o may_v be_v the_o sense_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o it_o must_v be_v so_o for_o the_o further_a clear_v of_o the_o matter_n we_o will_v go_v to_o the_o three_o circumstance_n to_o the_o method_n or_o the_o rule_n which_o we_o must_v number_v by_o and_o here_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o we_o have_v not_o only_o typical_a proof_n but_o true_a apocalyptical_a and_o demonstrative_a ground_n to_o build_v upon_o if_o we_o compare_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n with_o our_o own_o experience_n three_o the_o method_n by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o account_v be_v by_o the_o number_n of_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n in_o daniel_n image_n so_o then_o if_o we_o account_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdom_n there_o will_v be_v a_o exact_a line_n of_o 666_o year_n to_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n and_o here_o the_o best_a expositor_n do_v set_v the_o rise_n of_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o 666_o be_v call_v the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o experience_n also_o show_v that_o the_o account_n be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o period_n of_o time_n in_o daniel_n image_n and_o so_o we_o have_v not_o only_o probabili●…y_v but_o also_o apodeictical_a proof_n for_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o number_n but_o now_o to_o come_v to_o clear_v the_o point_n we_o will_v show_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o account_n by_o daniel_n method_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o number_n of_o a_o man_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n first_o it_o may_v fit_o be_v call_v a_o number_n because_o as_o mr._n mede_n right_o say_v it_o be_v the_o sacred_a calendar_n or_o prophetical_a chronologie_n appoint_v by_o god_n himself_o to_o measure_v the_o time_n we_o may_v therefore_o fit_o call_v it_o a_o number_n or_o as_o they_o speak_v in_o the_o school_n numerus_fw-la numerans_fw-la because_o it_o comprehend_v the_o four_o period_n of_o time_n appoint_v by_o god_n himself_o to_o number_v the_o special_a occurrence_n of_o the_o church_n second_o in_o a_o more_o special_a sense_n it_o be_v call_v the_o number_n of_o a_o man_n because_o it_o please_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o four_o region_n part_n and_o division_n of_o the_o body_n of_o man_n to_o number_v the_o four_o great_a empire_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o four_o notable_a and_o remarkable_a revolution_n of_o time_n the_o image_n in_o the_o part_n and_o in_o the_o division_n of_o it_o do_v not_o as_o interpreter_n well_o observe_v natural_o signify_v these_o thing_n but_o mere_o by_o positive_a and_o divine_a institution_n it_o please_v the_o lord_n by_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o humane_a image_n to_o decipher_v so_o many_o period_n of_o time_n and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n wherefore_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o figure_n call_v this_o form_n method_n and_o way_n of_o account_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o number_n of_o a_o man_n because_o it_o be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o humane_a image_n three_o this_o way_n of_o expression_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o other_o place_n as_o for_o example_n thou_o be_v this_o head_n of_o gold_n that_o be_v thou_o be_v signify_v by_o this_o head_n of_o gold_n the_o seven_o cow_n be_v seven_o year_n that_o be_v the_o seven_o cow_n do_v represent_v seven_o year_n and_o the_o seven_o head_n be_v seven_o mountain_n that_o be_v the_o seven_o head_n do_v type_n and_o set_v forth_o seven_o mountain_n and_o so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v the_o number_n of_o a_o man_n and_o that_o number_n be_v 666._o the_o plain_a meaning_n whereof_o be_v this_o that_o 666_o signify_v so_o many_o year_n specify_v and_o declare_v in_o the_o account_n of_o daniel_n image_n call_v the_o number_n of_o a_o man._n it_o be_v so_o style_v because_o the_o number_n be_v such_o in_o that_o calculation_n and_o it_o be_v so_o to_o be_v make_v out_o in_o that_o method_n and_o way_n of_o account_n four_o this_o method_n of_o account_n will_v agree_v with_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o will_v be_v a_o excellent_a subject_n for_o a_o man_n that_o have_v dexterity_n in_o the_o calculation_n of_o the_o time_n to_o employ_v the_o art_n and_o skill_n of_o a_o good_a accountant_a for_o to_o what_o end_n do_v the_o lord_n reveal_v this_o prophetical_a chronologie_n under_o the_o figure_n and_o similitude_n of_o the_o four_o region_n and_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o man_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o certain_a and_o a_o stand_a rule_n to_o all_o posterity_n to_o number_v those_o time_n and_o change_n of_o time_n that_o shall_v befall_v in_o and_o about_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n five_o the_o number_n of_o time_n by_o the_o account_n of_o daniel_n image_n be_v the_o most_o fit_a to_o decipher_v the_o rise_n of_o a_o tyrannical_a state_n such_o as_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v whereof_o we_o speak_v now_o what_o be_v the_o image_n of_o daniel_n it_o be_v no_o other_o but_o a_o systeme_n or_o body_n of_o the_o four_o great_a persecute_v empire_n which_o shall_v rise_v up_o one_o after_o another_o in_o the_o same_o succession_n notable_o to_o afflict_v the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o fith_v the_o beast_n with_o two_o horn_n in_o the_o revelation_n be_v such_o a_o dominion_n or_o state_n that_o shall_v notable_o afflict_v the_o saint_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n where_o can_v it_o be_v more_o proper_o or_o fit_o place_v then_o in_o the_o image_n of_o tyrannical_a empire_n all_o these_o be_v of_o the_o same_o lineage_n and_o kindred_n and_o therefore_o see_v it_o be_v the_o plot_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o delineate_v these_o four_o succession_n by_o so_o many_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o man_n we_o may_v well_o conclude_v that_o this_o way_n of_o computation_n be_v the_o number_n of_o a_o man_n mean_v in_o the_o text_n see_v it_o do_v so_o notable_o agree_v with_o the_o event_n six_o the_o number_n of_o time_n by_o the_o account_n of_o daniel_n image_n in_o the_o day_n of_o john_n and_o in_o the_o time_n immediate_o follow_v be_v most_o apt_a to_o find_v out_o the_o event_n that_o shall_v befall_v the_o church_n for_o this_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o though_o the_o beast_n his_o name_n mark_v and_o image_n be_v not_o extant_a in_o the_o time_n of_o john_n yet_o the_o number_n by_o and_o through_o which_o these_o be_v to_o be_v compute_v must_v then_o be_v not_o only_o extant_a but_o it_o must_v be_v also_o of_o remarkable_a use_n as_o for_o example_n the_o antichristian_a church_n have_v no_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o john_n nor_o in_o the_o age_n immediate_o follow_v yet_o nevertheless_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o revelation_n do_v decipher_v the_o place_n of_o this_o church_n by_o such_o a_o character_n as_o be_v famous_o know_v in_o the_o day_n of_o john_n the_o seven_o head_n be_v seven_o mountain_n where_o the_o woman_n sit_v now_o this_o do_v more_o proper_o appertain_v to_o those_o first_o time_n in_o which_o s._n john_n live_v that_o rome_n be_v seat_v upon_o seven_o mountain_n for_o the_o people_n then_o live_v though_o they_o shall_v never_o see_v the_o antichristian_a time_n yet_o john_n do_v foreshow_v the_o place_n where_o that_o church_n shall_v have_v she_o be_v in_o the_o time_n appoint_v and_o limit_v by_o the_o lord_n in_o like_a manner_n though_o the_o name_n image_n and_o mark_v of_o the_o name_n have_v none_o of_o they_o existence_n in_o the_o day_n of_o john_n yet_o the_o number_n by_o which_o all_o these_o must_v be_v account_v must_v needs_o then_o be_v in_o some_o tolerable_a use_n for_o how_o shall_v a_o man_n that_o have_v wisdom_n by_o the_o number_n find_v out_o the_o name_n if_o the_o number_n be_v no_o way_n discoverable_a in_o those_o time_n mr._n brightman_n upon_o the_o place_n do_v full_o agree_v with_o we_o his_o word_n be_v these_o though_o the_o mark_n and_o the_o name_n be_v not_o extant_a the_o beast_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o nevertheless_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n may_v be_v manifest_a to_o that_o age_n wherein_o john_n live_v and_o not_o only_o
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o number_n of_o his_o government_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 193_o for_o in_o that_o year_n he_o do_v begin_v to_o reign_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o nabonassar_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v in_o the_o present_a case_n of_o the_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal_n kingdom_n the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n or_o government_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 666_o only_a the_o difference_n be_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o computation_n for_o when_o we_o account_v the_o time_n of_o darius_n nabuchadnezzar_n and_o other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v the_o number_n of_o nabonassar_n but_o when_o we_o account_v the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o beginning_n thereof_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v the_o number_n in_o daniel_n image_n in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o prophetical_a chronologie_n figurative_o call_v the_o number_n of_o a_o man._n let_v we_o carry_v the_o matter_n to_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n the_o grecian_a antichrist_n of_o the_o beginning_n of_o his_o reign_n and_o government_n it_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o reign_v in_o the_o 137_o year_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o greek_n 1_o mac_n 1._o 11._o if_o we_o will_v draw_v this_o matter_n into_o figure_n the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n or_o government_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 137._o and_o for_o the_o way_n and_o method_n of_o account_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o greek_n for_o in_o such_o a_o year_n of_o their_o kingdom_n he_o begin_v to_o reign_v if_o we_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n to_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o universal_a headship_n under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n we_o may_v say_v that_o he_o begin_v that_o dominion_n in_o the_o year_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 666_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o from_o that_o time_n as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n come_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o roman_n there_o be_v such_o a_o exact_a number_n of_o year_n many_o more_o instance_n may_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o antiquity_n to_o show_v how_o it_o have_v be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o ancient_n to_o reckon_v the_o time_n and_o the_o change_n of_o government_n by_o the_o character_n of_o the_o greek_a alphabet_n but_o these_o shall_v suffice_v now_o to_o gather_v all_o into_o one_o sum_n i_o have_v compare_v the_o interpretation_n with_o all_o the_o particular_n of_o the_o text._n i_o have_v show_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o law_n what_o by_o the_o beast_n that_o make_v the_o law_n what_o by_o the_o person_n that_o do_v receive_v the_o mark_n in_o their_o forehead_n and_o in_o their_o right-hand_n i_o have_v large_o discourse_v also_o concern_v the_o calculation_n of_o the_o number_n who_o the_o person_n be_v that_o be_v to_o make_v the_o discovery_n what_o the_o calculation_n be_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o number_n of_o a_o man_n and_o what_o by_o 666_o year_n to_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o name_n or_o universal_a hea●…ship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o see_v i_o find_v all_o thing_n to_o agree_v therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o this_o be_v a_o true_a interpretation_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o let_v we_o go_v to_o the_o next_o chapter_n chap._n ix_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o interpretation_n be_v further_o confirm_v from_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o seventeen_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n here_o all_o solid_a expositor_n do_v agree_v that_o the_o same_o matter_n be_v handle_v again_o which_o be_v former_o discourse_v of_o in_o the_o 13_o chapter_n the_o thing_n be_v not_o aliud_fw-la &_o aliud_fw-la another_o and_o another_o though_o it_o be_v deliver_v aliter_fw-la &_o aliter_fw-la in_o another_o and_o another_o manner_n that_o which_o be_v there_o speak_v concern_v the_o beast_n as_o a_o king_n or_o potentate_n be_v here_o apply_v to_o a_o idolatrous_a or_o whorish_a church_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n so_o he_o carry_v i_o away_o in_o the_o spirit_n into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o i_o see_v a_o woman_n sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet-coloured_n beast_n full_a of_o the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n v_o 3._o this_o woman_n be_v a_o idolatrous_a church_n and_o if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o whole_a scope_n of_o the_o description_n she_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o roman_a idolatrous_a church_n that_o this_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v clear_a from_o the_o 9_o vers._n the_o seven_o head_n be_v seven_o mountain_n where_o the_o woman_n sit_v now_o all_o story_n do_v agree_v that_o rome_n be_v seat_v upon_o seven_o hill_n and_o be_v famous_a through_o all_o the_o world_n by_o the_o title_n of_o septicollis_a or_o the_o seven-hilled_n city_n and_o to_o put_v all_o out_o of_o question_n the_o angel_n say_v the_o woman_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v the_o great_a city_n that_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n ver_fw-la 18._o now_o what_o be_v the_o great_a city_n which_o in_o the_o day_n of_o john_n reign_v over_o all_o earthly_a king_n but_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v such_o clear_a character_n in_o the_o text_n that_o the_o ancient_n who_o live_v before_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n do_v all_o agree_n in_o it_o that_o rome_n be_v the_o city_n babylon_n and_o the_o jesuit_n in_o these_o day_n who_o of_o all_o man_n live_v be_v the_o most_o active_a to_o hide_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o scripture_n do_v yield_v that_o rome_n be_v here_o intend_a but_o how_o not_o rome_n christian_n but_o rome_n pagan_a to_o this_o we_o reply_v though_o the_o apostle_n do_v make_v mention_n of_o rome_n pagan_a yet_o he_o do_v primary_o intend_v rome_n christian_n or_o rather_o rome_n antichristian_a let_v it_o be_v consider_v what_o title_n be_v give_v to_o she_o and_o so_o not_o only_o in_o this_o chapter_n but_o in_o other_o place_n she_o be_v call_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n in_o scripture-language_n this_o name_n be_v only_o give_v to_o idolatrous_a church_n we_o never_o or_o at_o least_o seldom_o read_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o whore_n of_o egypt_n of_o the_o whore_n of_o edom_n of_o the_o whore_n of_o tyrus_n or_o of_o the_o whore_n of_o damascus_n this_o title_n be_v usual_o give_v to_o samaria_n and_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n and_o judah_n as_o they_o do_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n to_o serve_v other_o god_n and_o therefore_o hosea_n in_o the_o vision_n be_v to_o take_v a_o wife_n of_o fornication_n because_o the_o land_n have_v commit_v great_a whoredom_n in_o depart_v from_o the_o lord_n hos._n 1._o 2._o so_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n be_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o spiritual_a fornication_n of_o samaria_n and_o jerusalem_n call_v the_o one_o aholah_n and_o the_o other_o aholibamah_n ezek._n 23._o 4._o from_o these_o and_o many_o other_o scripture_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o title_n be_v usual_o give_v to_o idolatrous_a church_n which_o have_v depart_v away_o from_o christ_n their_o lawful_a husband_n so_o then_o if_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n do_v signify_v rome_n this_o must_v needs_o be_v apply_v to_o rome_n christian_n as_o she_o do_v break_v her_o marriage-covenant_n with_o christ_n and_o yield_v herself_o up_o to_o another_o husband_n for_o rome_n pagan_a be_v never_o marry_v to_o christ_n and_o therefore_o though_o she_o may_v be_v call_v babylon_n in_o the_o figure_n yet_o she_o be_v not_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n second_o she_o be_v describe_v in_o the_o text_n have_v a_o golden_a cup_n in_o her_o hand_n by_o which_o amorous_a po●…ion_n she_o do_v entice_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o commit_v fornication_n with_o she_o now_o this_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o rome_n pagan_a but_o to_o the_o romish_a church_n which_o have_v great_o deceive_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n by_o her_o idolatry_n and_o superdition_n three_o it_o be_v clear_a from_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n that_o the_o woman_n do_v ride_v the_o beast_n in_o its_o last_o and_o renew_a state_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ten_o king_n for_o these_o shall_v carry_v the_o whore_n and_o shall_v be_v whole_o at_o her_o devotion_n till_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v and_o after_o that_o they_o shall_v hate_v she_o as_o much_o and_o burn_v her_o flesh_n with_o fire_n if_o we_o apply_v this_o to_o rome_n pagan_a there_o be_v nothing_o will_v agree_v for_o she_o have_v no_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ten_o king_n but_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v
fit_o apply_v to_o rome_n antichristian_a which_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o call_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n in_o the_o figure_n but_o now_o a_o little_a to_o draw_v near_o to_o the_o point_n when_o be_v it_o that_o the_o whore_n do_v begin_v to_o ride_v the_o beast_n and_o where_o shall_v we_o set_v the_o date_n of_o her_o dominion_n for_o so_o the_o angel_n do_v expound_v the_o word_n the_o water_n where_o the_o whore_n sit_v be_v kindred_n and_o people_n and_o multitude_n and_o nation_n and_o language_n ver_fw-la 17._o her_o sit_v upon_o the_o beast_n and_o upon_o many_o water_n do_v not_o only_o imply_v a_o ordinary_a sit_v but_o a_o sit_v in_o the_o way_n of_o lordship_n dominion_n and_o supreme_a command_n such_o a_o kind_n of_o sit_v we_o must_v look_v after_o if_o we_o will_v true_o know_v the_o time_n when_o the_o whore_n begin_v to_o ride_v the_o beast_n and_o here_o i_o say_v at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v begin_v to_o be_v the_o second_o beast_n or_o universal_a head_n under_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n then_o at_o the_o same_o time_n do_v the_o roman_a church_n begin_v to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n or_o rather_o the_o great_a whore_n that_o ride_v the_o beast_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o the_o fornication_n and_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o earth_n let_v we_o therefore_o more_o distinct_o consider_v the_o time_n as_o the_o angel_n do_v give_v the_o true_a delineation_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o speak_v of_o the_o ten_o king_n that_o shall_v carry_v the_o whore_n that_o shall_v be_v whole_o at_o her_o devotion_n he_o do_v express_o speak_v of_o they_o they_o have_v no_o kingdom_n as_o yet_o but_o receive_v a_o kingdom_n as_o king_n one_o hour_n with_o the_o beast_n ver_fw-la 12._o therefore_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o king_n must_v needs_o anticipate_v or_o go_v before_o the_o jurisdiction_n and_o dominion_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n and_o lest_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o mistake_n in_o the_o time_n the_o angel_n do_v plain_o show_v that_o there_o must_v be_v eight_o revolution_n of_o state_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o seven_o of_o they_o must_v fall_v before_o the_o time_n come_v that_o the_o whore_n shall_v ride_v the_o beast_n these_o be_v his_o word_n there_o be_v seven_o king_n five_o be_v fall_v one_o be_v and_o the_o other_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v and_o when_o he_o come_v he_o must_v continue_v a_o short_a space_n and_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v and_o be_v not_o he_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o be_v of_o the_o seven_o and_o go_v into_o perdition_n ver_fw-la 10_o 11._o from_o whence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o ten_o king_n must_v arise_v and_o seven_o form_n of_o government_n must_v fall_v in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n can_v begin_v but_o here_o be_v a_o hard_a question_n to_o be_v decide_v by_o the_o way_n how_o can_v the_o beast_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o eight_o king_n and_o yet_o one_o of_o the_o seven_o head_n i_o will_v the_o more_o willing_o take_v it_o into_o consideration_n because_o i_o have_v be_v heretofore_o much_o puzzle_v with_o the_o question_n and_o i_o find_v also_o that_o the_o very_o best_a and_o most_o approve_a interpreter_n do_v not_o give_v a_o certain_a sound_n to_o let_v pass_v how_o far_o brightman_n and_o paraeus_n have_v go_v aside_o in_o the_o matter_n mr._n forbes_n make_v the_o king_n and_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n to_o be_v co_z incident_a term_n but_o in_o this_o he_o be_v great_o mistake_v for_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o order_n of_o king_n be_v expresl●…_n say_v to_o be_v the_o eight_o king_n and_o in_o the_o order_n of_o head_n he_o be_v only_o one_o of_o the_o seven_o therefore_o we_o may_v certain_o conclude_v that_o these_o be_v not_o equivalent_a term_n but_o that_o necessary_o some_o distinction_n must_v be_v make_v betwixt_o the_o head_n and_o the_o king_n mr._n mede_n therefore_o keep_v himself_o in_o doubtful_a term_n for_o speak_v of_o the_o seven_o change_n of_o state_n to_o wit_n the_o christian_a caesar_n he_o say_v that_o this_o potentate_n because_o he_o shall_v be_v of_o short_a continuance_n shall_v seem_v to_o be_v dynaste_n alius_fw-la another_o ruler_n sed_fw-la revera_fw-la non_fw-la alius_fw-la in_o deed_n and_o in_o truth_n not_o another_o so_o likewise_o concern_v the_o beast_n in_o which_o state_n he_o shall_v carry_v the_o whore_n this_o beast_n say_v he_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o change_n of_o the_o caesar_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o eight_o but_o revera_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la septimus_fw-la in_o deed_n and_o in_o truth_n no_o other_o but_o the_o seven_o in_o which_o word_n of_o he_o so_o far_o as_o i_o apprehend_v there_o be_v two_o passage_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o differ_v from_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n for_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o change_n of_o the_o caesareate_a from_o the_o pagan_a to_o the_o christian_a caesar_n how_o can_v he_o call_v that_o of_o the_o christian_a caesar_n dynasten_fw-la quasi_fw-la alium_fw-la revera_fw-la tamen_fw-la non_fw-la alium_fw-la the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n be_v plain_a five_o be_v fall_v one_o be_v to_o wit_n that_o of_o the_o pagan_a caesar_n when_o john_n write_v the_o revelation_n and_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o of_o the_o christian_a caesar_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v it_o be_v clear_a then_o that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v eight_o in_o all_o and_o not_o eight_o in_o appearance_n only_o and_o the_o dynasty_a of_o the_o christian_a caesar_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d another_o in_o reality_n and_o truth_n and_o not_o another_o in_o show_n only_o as_o mr._n mede_n will_v have_v it_o so_o likewise_o for_o the_o beast_n it_o be_v strange_a that_o he_o shall_v affirm_v he_o to_o be_v quasi_fw-la octavum_fw-la dynasten_fw-la as_o it_o be_v the_o eight_o potentate_n sed_fw-la revera_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la septimum_fw-la but_o in_o deed_n and_o in_o truth_n no_o other_o but_o the_o seven_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n be_v express_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v and_o be_v not_o he_o be_v octavus_fw-la the_o eight_o in_o reality_n and_o in_o truth_n and_o not_o the_o eight_o in_o appearance_n only_o therefore_o the_o exposition_n of_o mr._n mede_n do_v contradict_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n and_o the_o knot_n remain_v upon_o much_o debate_n i_o find_v that_o we_o must_v go_v another_o way_n to_o work_v and_o here_o we_o must_v distinguish_v the_o roman_a government_n as_o they_o be_v simple_o so_o call_v from_o the_o roman_a government_n as_o they_o be_v head_n of_o the_o beast_n if_o you_o look_v upon_o the_o roman_a government_n as_o so_o many_o policy_n and_o form_n of_o dominion_n than_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o there_o be_v eight_o form_n of_o regency_n to_o wit_n the_o king_n the_o consul_n the_o decemvir_n the_o dictator_n the_o tribune_n the_o pagan_a caesar_n the_o christian_a caesar_n and_o after_o all_o these_o seven_o come_v the_o beast_n as_o octavus_fw-la dynaste_n the_o eight_o potentate_n now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o you_o reckon_v the_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n there_o can_v be_v but_o seven_o head_n and_o therefore_o the_o beast_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o particular_a seven_o see_v the_o christian_a caesar_n from_o constantine_n to_o augustus_n can_v be_v call_v a_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n at_o all_o unless_o we_o will_v go_v against_o the_o scope_n of_o scripture_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o call_v christian_a government_n by_o the_o title_n of_o a_o beast_n or_o the_o head_n of_o a_o beast_n this_o character_n do_v proper_o appertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n and_o state_n of_o this_o world_n that_o persecute_v the_o church_n and_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ._n upon_o this_o account_n the_o christian_a caesar_n do_v indeed_o make_v a_o distinct_a dynasty_a or_o policy_n and_o yet_o be_v no_o part_n or_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n be_v clear_a for_o when_o the_o spirit_n speak_v of_o the_o other_o that_o shall_v come_v to_o wit_n the_o dynasty_a of_o the_o christian_a caesar_n he_o do_v not_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d another_o head_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d another_o king_n which_o show_v plain_o that_o the_o christian_a caesar_n be_v a_o distinct_a form_n of_o government_n but_o no_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n so_o likewise_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o last_o edition_n be_v not_o term_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o eight_o head_n but_o he_o be_v simple_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o eight_o king_n touch_v the_o king_n it_o be_v speak_v
of_o they_o five_o be_v fall_v one_o be_v and_o the_o other_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v and_o the_o beast_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n he_o be_v the_o eight_o to_o satisfy_v the_o doubt_n we_o do_v pitch_n upon_o this_o sense_n that_o the_o beast_n be_v both_o the_o eight_o dynasty_n and_o the_o seven_o head_n for_o if_o you_o reckon_v by_o the_o order_n of_o king_n the_o dynasty_a of_o the_o christian_a caesar_n be_v include_v he_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o eight_o but_o if_o you_o reckon_v by_o the_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v pagan_a and_o idolatrous_a form_n of_o government_n then_o that_o of_o the_o christian_a caesar_n must_v be_v status_fw-la ex●…resimus_fw-la or_o exemptilis_fw-la a_o state_n exempt_v and_o put_v out_o of_o the_o calendar_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o beast_n if_o you_o reckon_v he_o among_o the_o king_n his_o place_n be_v to_o be_v the_o eight_o but_o yet_o among_o the_o head_n he_o be_v but_o the_o seven_o and_o so_o these_o word_n the_o beast_n that_o be_v and_o be_v not_o he_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o be_v plain_a as_o i_o take_v it_o and_o the_o knot_n be_v untie_v but_o leave_v this_o scruple_n i_o find_v that_o all_o solid_a interpreter_n do_v agree_v in_o the_o general_a sense_n of_o the_o text_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o antichristian_a time_n begin_v at_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o ten_o king_n the_o word_n of_o the_o angel_n be_v so_o clear_a for_o speak_v of_o the_o roman_a dominion_n and_o the_o ten_o horn_n of_o that_o beast_n he_o express_o say_v these_o have_v no_o kingdom_n as_o yet_o but_o shall_v receive_v a_o kingdom_n one_o hour_n with_o the_o beast_n which_o plain_o show_v that_o their_o time_n shall_v be_v when_o the_o roman_a dominion_n shall_v come_v to_o the_o last_o and_o antichristian_a edition_n of_o state_n the_o fall_n of_o the_o old_a empire_n and_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o ten_o king_n be_v a_o infallible_a character_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o antichristian_a time_n and_o this_o no_o man_n can_v rational_o deny_v that_o do_v look_v upon_o the_o true_a scope_n of_o the_o angel_n interpretation_n but_o our_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o time_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n when_o be_v it_o that_o she_o do_v begin_v to_o ride_v the_o beast_n we_o can_v say_v that_o it_o be_v at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o king_n do_v rise_v out_o of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o empire_n for_o then_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v not_o dogmatical_o and_o conscientious_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n to_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o case_n we_o will_v consider_v what_o expositor_n do_v say_v to_o this_o purpose_n for_o in_o the_o 17_o chapter_n though_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o beast_n with_o ten_o horn_n yet_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o word_n of_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n now_o the_o reason_n ordinary_o give_v be_v very_o solid_a and_o it_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o description_n under_o the_o resemblance_n of_o a_o beast_n with_o two_o horn_n chap._n 13._o be_v again_o repeat_v under_o the_o similitude_n and_o type_n of_o a_o great_a whore_n chap._n 17._o both_o scripture_n speak_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o matter_n in_o substance_n though_o in_o a_o different_a manner_n and_o if_o need_n shall_v require_v we_o have_v many_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o parallel_n now_o then_o in_o the_o present_a case_n see_v john_n speak_v of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n that_o in_o his_o day_n be_v the_o great_a city_n that_o rule_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v to_o our_o purpose_n to_o inquire_v when_o the_o church_n come_v within_o the_o verge_n of_o the_o dominion_n o●…_n that_o great_a city_n and_o here_o i_o say_v if_o we_o calculate_v the_o time_n aright_o and_o reckon_v 666_o year_n from_o that_o time_n when_o that_o great_a city_n come_v to_o have_v dominion_n over_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v precise_o come_v to_o that_o point_n and_o instant_n of_o time_n when_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v make_v the_o catholic_n and_o the_o general_a mother_n of_o all_o other_o church_n the_o church_n first_o come_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o then_o 666_o year_n after_o ●…hat_o church_n herself_o be_v declare_v universal_a mother_n of_o all_o church_n and_o here_o then_o our_o interpretation_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o substance_n in_o both_o scripture_n and_o whereas_o the_o woman_n have_v this_o inscription_n on_o her_o forehead_n mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o name_n then_o on_o the_o forehead_n of_o the_o woman_n be_v not_o a_o grammatical_a word_n consist_v of_o letter_n and_o syllable_n but_o it_o signify_v her_o universal_a maternity_n or_o motherhood_n when_o she_o begin_v to_o be_v declare_v universal_a mother_n over_o all_o other_o church_n now_o if_o you_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o time_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o 666_o year_n from_o that_o time_n when_o the_o church_n and_o the_o territory_n of_o the_o church_n come_v under_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o this_o be_v the_o number_n of_o her_o maternity_n or_o general_a motherhood_n or_o of_o the_o name_n write_v in_o the_o forehead_n of_o the_o woman_n if_o we_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n in_o the_o 13_o chapter_n his_o name_n be_v no_o other_o but_o his_o paternity_n or_o universal_a headship_n and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o number_n of_o his_o universal_a headship_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o four_o metal-kingdome_n and_o so_o the_o sense_n of_o one_o chapter_n be_v clear_a by_o the_o scope_n and_o drift_n of_o the_o other_o but_o we_o go_v on_o chap._n x._o a_o list_n of_o fifteen_o principle_n draw_v from_o the_o main_a sense_n of_o the_o prophecy_n concern_v the_o beast_n his_o name_n mark_v and_o number_n by_o the_o position_n of_o which_o the_o present_a interpretation_n be_v establish_v also_o the_o several_a exposition_n of_o mr._n potter_n and_o other_o writer_n be_v bring_v to_o trial_n for_o the_o more_o full_a proof_n of_o the_o point_n we_o must_v take_v the_o same_o method_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o interpretation_n as_o divine_n do_v when_o they_o will_v prove_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n they_o do_v infallible_o determine_v he_o to_o be_v so_o because_o all_o the_o property_n of_o the_o beast_n do_v punctual_o pitch_v upon_o that_o seat_n or_o succession_n so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n we_o may_v say_v that_o 666_o be_v such_o a_o number_n of_o year_n to_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o name_n or_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o this_o we_o take_v to_o be_v a_o infallible_a and_o undoubted_a truth_n because_o all_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o prophecy_n do_v pitch_n and_o main_o centre_n upon_o such_o a_o interpretation_n we_o can_v prove_v the_o truth_n thereof_o by_o the_o accumulation_n of_o note_n w●…_n may_v further_o take_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o jesuit_n suarez_n for_o he_o himself_o well_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o decipher_v antichrist_n by_o one_o two_o or_o three_o note_n but_o by_o the_o concurrence_n of_o all_o the_o property_n that_o do_v appertain_v to_o he_o so_o i_o may_v say_v for_o a_o tight_a exposition_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o number_n thereof_o we_o must_v not_o rest_v in_o a_o few_o circumstance_n for_o so_o many_o have_v be_v bring_v for_o the_o name_n lateinos_n and_o m._n p●…tters_n interpretation_n also_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o fair_a but_o this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o main_o stand_v upon_o that_o their_o several_a interpretation_n will_v not_o agree_v with_o many_o principle_n the_o same_o course_n than_o that_o we_o take_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n shall_v be_v to_o disprove_v their_o error_n but_o now_o to_o the_o principle_n in_o order_n princ._n 1_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n his_o mark_n and_o number_n do_v all_o agree_v to_o the_o papal_a tyranny_n by_o a_o special_a application_n this_o be_v prove_v from_o the_o whole_a scope_n of_o the_o text._n for_o the_o beast_n be_v a_o tyrannical_a empire_n or_o government_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o also_o a_o roman_a tyrannical_a empire_n in_o the_o last_o edition_n thereof_o therefore_o these_o character_n be_v special_o applicable_a to_o that_o government_n and_o to_o the_o hierarchy_n thereof_o and_o not_o to_o any_o other_o they_o err_v therefore_o that_o seek_v after_o the_o number_n in_o the_o
give_v they_o a_o mark_v as_o if_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v by_o this_o that_o they_o shall_v give_v testimony_n that_o they_o be_v he_o they_o be_v also_o say_v to_o receive_v a_o mark_n chap._n 14._o to_o have_v the_o mark_v chap._n 16._o now_o than_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o to_o give_v receive_v or_o have_v the_o mark_v of_o the_o beast_n be_v no_o other_o but_o that_o act_n by_o which_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n be_v oblige_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o church_n when_o also_o they_o do_v prosess_v that_o by_o their_o sword_n wit_n good_n life_n and_o by_o all_o that_o they_o have_v they_o will_v maintain_v the_o decree_n and_o law_n make_v by_o that_o authority_n the_o mark_n in_o the_o forehead_n be_v the_o public_a profession_n of_o the_o universal_a headship_n in_o the_o view_n of_o man_n and_o the_o mark_n in_o the_o right-hand_a be_v the_o solemn_a resolution_n and_o obligation_n to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o beast_n against_o all_o that_o do_v oppose_v it_o and_o true_o the_o event_n of_o thing_n do_v notable_o answer_v the_o prediction_n for_o we_o see_v by_o plain_a experience_n that_o the_o papist_n such_o be_v their_o zeal_n to_o the_o catholic_n cause_n do_v outstrip_v we_o by_o many_o degree_n the_o jesui●…es_n be_v never_o idle_a they_o compass_v sea_n and_o land_n they_o ●…urn_v themselves_o into_o all_o form_n and_o be_v still_o animate_v of_o prince_n and_o people_n against_o the_o protestant_a cause_n yea_o they_o have_v so_o wrought_v that_o almost_o no_o man_n among_o they_o seem_v to_o spare_v either_o labour_n wealth_n counsel_n or_o life_n itself_o to_o uphold_v the_o name_n and_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n god_n grant_v that_o one_o day_n they_o do_v not_o rise_v up_o in_o judgement_n against_o we_o for_o we_o do_v not_o come_v near_o they_o in_o the_o least_o degree_n in_o promote_a the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n or_o in_o set_v up_o the_o gospel_n as_o the_o regent-law_n among_o the_o nation_n but_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o hear_v that_o they_o be_v enemy_n or_o that_o they_o go_v against_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o word_n they_o hold_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o have_v all_o his_o authority_n by_o delegation_n from_o he_o these_o be_v specious_a show_n but_o in_o deed_n and_o in_o truth_n they_o be_v real_a enemy_n against_o christ_n for_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o can_v do_v nothing_o but_o mere_o as_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v give_v life_n vigour_n and_o authority_n to_o they_o and_o as_o they_o do_v interpret_v they_o which_o always_o they_o do_v to_o their_o own_o advantage_n there_o be_v no_o truth_n more_o clear_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o yet_o the_o pope_n say_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n after_o this_o life_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n there_o detain_v be_v free_v by_o mass_n indulgence_n pardon_n and_o such_o like_a mean_n god_n and_o his_o word_n say_v thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v the_o pope_n on_o the_o contrary_n say_v thou_o shall_v worship_v saint_n image_n cross_n relic_n and_o the_o like_a god_n and_o christ_n have_v command_v all_o man_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o try_v the_o spirit_n of_o what_o nature_n they_o be_v now_o the_o pope_n on_o the_o contrary_n command_v that_o man_n shall_v forbear_v the_o do_n of_o this_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v depend_v upon_o he_o alone_o god_n and_o christ_n say_v marriage_n be_v honourable_a among_o all_o man_n and_o the_o bed_n undefiled_a the_o pope_n on_o the_o contrary_a forbid_v marriage_n to_o the_o ministry_n by_o these_o and_o sundry_a suchlike_a instance_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o name_n and_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v every_o way_n contrary_a to_o the_o name_n and_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o lamb._n for_o what_o the_o lamb_n do_v command_v the_o beast_n do_v countermand_v for_o the_o most_o part_n from_o hence_o it_o be_v clear_a then_o say_v the_o papist_n what_o they_o will_v when_o they_o leave_v christ_n to_o follow_v the_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o sense_n and_o substance_n they_o make_v he_o their_o christ_n their_o spiritual_a king_n head_n and_o governor_n and_o so_o in_o effect_n be_v no_o true_a christian_n now_o on_o the_o contrary_a see_v the_o lord_n christ_n be_v give_v as_o a_o leader_n and_o commander_n to_o his_o people_n they_o who_o refuse_v the_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o yield_v subjection_n to_o christ_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o great_a persecution_n be_v every_o where_o mention_v in_o the_o revelation_n to_o have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n write_v in_o their_o forehead_n chap._n 14._o ver_fw-la 15._o to_o be_v the_o remnant_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n that_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n christ_n chap._n 12._o ver_fw-la 17._o the_o papist_n then_o in_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n under_o that_o formality_n as_o they_o do_v believe_v he_o universal_a head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v positive_o direct_o and_o immediate_o antichristian_a this_o truth_n be_v lay_v down_o a_o stream_n of_o excellent_a uses_n do_v natural_o flow_v from_o it_o first_o we_o may_v here_o contemplate_v and_o behold_v the_o truth_n and_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v now_o above_o 1500_o year_n since_o that_o john_n write_v the_o revelation_n in_o which_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o beast_n his_o name_n mark_v image_n and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n now_o if_o we_o go_v to_o experience_n what_o have_v all_o age_n for_o this_o thousand_o year_n last_o pass_v but_o verify_v and_o fulfil_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v of_o long_o before_o he_o that_o shall_v diligent_o read_v the_o present_a treatise_n will_v find_v it_o to_o be_v true_a as_o we_o have_v say_v second_o here_o be_v matter_n for_o our_o prayer_n and_o tear_n yea_o for_o our_o bowel_n to_o yern_v over_o those_o great_a country_n kingdom_n and_o commonweal_n which_o do_v as_o yet_o own_o the_o universal_a headship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o do_v continue_v in_o a_o great_a sin_n against_o the_o kingly_a office_n of_o christ_n their_o profession_n be_v no_o other_o but_o apostasy_n from_o the_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o unless_o they_o repent_v they_o will_v one_o day_n feel_v the_o great_a plague_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n three_o here_o be_v cause_n for_o the_o protestant_a church_n to_o be_v thankful_a to_o the_o lord_n for_o do_v they_o right_o understand_v it_o he_o have_v deliver_v they_o from_o a_o bondage_n and_o slavery_n which_o far_o surpass_v the_o bondage_n of_o egypt_n or_o babylon_n for_o in_o the_o present_a case_n if_o man_n under_o this_o government_n refuse_v to_o worship_n the_o beast_n and_o to_o receive_v his_o mark_n the_o penalty_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o liberty_n to_o buy_v nor_o sell_v they_o shall_v be_v kill_v with_o the_o sword_n they_o shall_v have_v their_o blood_n spill_v they_o shall_v be_v subject_v to_o sundry_a kind_n of_o death_n on_o the_o contrary_a if_o they_o do_v worship_v the_o beast_n and_o receive_v his_o mark_n the_o lord_n christ_n do_v threaten_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v torment_v day_n and_o night_n and_o the_o smoke_n of_o their_o burn_a shall_v ascend_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o rev._n chap._n 14._o ver_fw-la 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o the_o day_n of_o the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n from_o romish_a tyranny_n be_v a_o day_n of_o deliverance_n from_o a_o tyranny_n over_o their_o soul_n over_o their_o conscience_n over_o their_o body_n over_o their_o estate_n but_o all_o treatise_n be_v full_a of_o uses_n of_o this_o kind_n we_o will_v proceed_v ●…o_o that_o which_o be_v antichristian_a by_o analogy_n and_o reduction_n for_o this_o be_v more_o immediate_a to_o our_o purpose_n chap._n xiii_o concern_v that_o which_o be_v antichristian_a by_o analogy_n and_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o discourse_n we_o have_v show_v that_o the_o formality_n of_o antichristianism_n be_v in_o the_o headship_n of_o the_o beast_n by_o this_o standard_n of_o the_o market_n we_o may_v prove_v all_o other_o thing_n that_o do_v more_o remote_o symbolize_v and_o agree_v with_o the_o great_a antichrist_n first_o the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n when_o it_o have_v no_o bound_n or_o limit_n but_o he_o do_v all_o by_o his_o will_n and_o prerogative_n in_o
doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o whole_a spiritual_a government_n therefore_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o temper_n keep_v for_o this_o disease_n have_v always_o reign_v in_o prince_n to_o desire_v to_o bend_v religion_n according_a to_o their_o own_o pleasure_n and_o lust_n and_o for_o their_o own_o profit_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n so_o far_o he_o in_o which_o word_n two_o point_n be_v observable_a first_o the_o lawful_a exercise_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n as_o it_o do_v keep_v its_o due_a limit_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a second_o the_o redundancy_n and_o the_o excess_n of_o the_o power_n when_o it_o do_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n that_o which_o these_o learned_a man_n do_v speak_v concern_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o excess_n of_o the_o civil_a power_n have_v be_v too_o true_o verify_v by_o some_o in_o our_o day_n not_o only_o to_o the_o total_a ruin_n of_o themselves_o but_o also_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o that_o sovereignty_n itself_o which_o they_o do_v so_o immeasurable_o exalt_v and_o whereas_o calvin_n in_o the_o place_n aforemention_v have_v these_o word_n et_fw-la hodie_fw-la quam_fw-la multi_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o papatu_fw-la qui_fw-la regibus_fw-la accumulant_fw-la quicquid_fw-la possunt_fw-la juris_fw-la &_o potestatis_fw-la and_o at_o this_o day_n say_v he_o how_o many_o be_v there_o in_o the_o papacy_n that_o heap_n upon_o king_n whatsoever_o right_o or_o power_n they_o can_v possible_a so_o that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v any_o dispute_n of_o religion_n but_o this_o power_n shall_v be_v in_o one_o king_n to_o decree_v according_a to_o his_o own_o pleasure_n whatsoever_o he_o list_v and_o that_o shall_v remain_v fix_v without_o controversy_n so_o far_o he_o but_o we_o for_o our_o part_n may_v not_o only_o say_v quam_fw-la multi_fw-la in_o papatu_fw-la how_o many_o in_o the_o papacy_n but_o how_o many_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v accumulate_v this_o great_a power_n upon_o prince_n that_o they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o list_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o determination_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o daniel_n and_o the_o revelation_n these_o thing_n be_v set_v down_o as_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o kingdom_n that_o be_v a_o most_o divine_a expression_n of_o daniel_n and_o the_o three_o child_n chap._n 2._o ver_fw-la 20_o 21._o wisdom_n and_o might_n be_v his_o and_o he_o change_v the_o time_n and_o season_n he_o remove_v king_n and_o set_v up_o king_n and_o for_o the_o cause_n of_o these_o change_n it_o be_v more_o particular_o express_v chap._n 7._o v._n 11._o i_o behold_v then_o because_o of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o great_a word_n which_o the_o horn_n speak_v i_o behold_v even_o till_o the_o beast_n be_v slay_v and_o his_o body_n destroy_v and_o give_v to_o the_o burn_a fire_n all_o solid_a interpreter_n do_v understand_v some_o state_n or_o government_n to_o be_v type_v by_o the_o little_a horn._n now_o the_o destruction_n of_o such_o a_o state_n or_o government_n do_v arise_v immediate_o from_o hence_o because_o of_o great_a word_n which_o the_o horn_n do_v speak_v against_o the_o most_o high_a therefore_o the_o exorbitancy_n of_o the_o power_n against_o religion_n christ_n and_o his_o saint_n be_v oftentimes_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o eversion_n of_o state_n and_o kingdom_n but_o that_o we_o may_v more_o full_o understand_v how_o far_o the_o power_n may_v go_v and_o whither_o it_o must_v not_o go_v let_v we_o consider_v the_o example_n of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n and_o here_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o asa_n jehosaphat_n hezekiah_n josiah_n do_v great_a thing_n about_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v a_o very_a large_a testimony_n for_o their_o zeal_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n yet_o i_o be_o sure_a none_o can_v say_v that_o their_o power_n be_v so_o transcendent_a as_o to_o abrogate_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v appoint_v or_o immediate_o command_v by_o god_n in_o his_o word_n for_o when_o uzziah_n the_o king_n will_v offer_v incense_n that_o appertain_v not_o to_o he_o but_o to_o the_o son_n of_o aaron_n he_o be_v imitten_v with_o leprosy_n and_o compel_v to_o dwell_v alone_o as_o one_o that_o shall_v have_v no_o commerce_n nor_o society_n with_o man_n so_o belshazzar_n the_o king_n when_o he_o make_v a_o feast_n to_o a_o thousand_o of_o his_o lord_n we_o read_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o feast_n the_o finger_n of_o a_o man_n hand_n do_v appear_v and_o write_v upon_o the_o wall_n the_o destruction_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o judgement_n be_v expound_v by_o daniel_n himself_o in_o these_o word_n chap._n 5._o ver_fw-la 25._o thou_o have_v lift_v up_o thyself_o against_o the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o they_o have_v bring_v the_o vessel_n of_o his_o house_n before_o thou_o and_o thou_o and_o thy_o lord_n thy_o wife_n and_o thy_o concubine_n have_v drink_v wine_n in_o they_o belshazzar_n and_o nabuchadnezzar_n both_o by_o strong_a conviction_n and_o demonstration_n be_v bring_v to_o understand_v that_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o that_o they_o have_v their_o dominion_n from_o he_o now_o when_o they_o be_v not_o content_v with_o this_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v they_o but_o will_v insult_v over_o the_o giver_n and_o drink_v wine_n in_o the_o bowl_n of_o the_o temple_n which_o they_o have_v take_v with_o sacrilegious_a hand_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n at_o last_o there_o be_v a_o remarkable_a passage_n of_o herodotus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n where_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o a_o statue_n that_o be_v set_v up_o to_o sennacherib_n in_o one_o of_o the_o temple_n of_o egypt_n with_o this_o inscription_n and_o title_n upon_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whosoever_o look_v upon_o i_o let_v he_o learn_v to_o be_v pious_a this_o testimony_n as_o it_o have_v the_o great_a probability_n of_o truth_n so_o do_v it_o singular_o well_o agree_v with_o the_o story_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o read_v that_o 185000_o be_v slay_v in_o one_o night_n in_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o assyrian_n by_o a_o angel_n send_v from_o heaven_n sennacherib_n himself_o be_v kill_v by_o his_o own_o two_o son_n and_o that_o great_a empire_n do_v decline_v and_o lose_v its_o vigour_n by_o degree_n now_o if_o we_o look_v into_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o this_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o insolency_n of_o that_o king_n against_o god_n and_o his_o church_n be_v that_o which_o break_v he_o all_o to_o piece_n this_o be_v do_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o asia_n that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o the_o insolency_n of_o the_o great_a power_n of_o the_o earth_n against_o god_n will_v prove_v the_o certain_a cause_n of_o their_o destruction_n but_o we_o will_v conclude_v this_o matter_n with_o that_o exhortation_n of_o the_o psalmist_n for_o so_o he_o speak_v to_o all_o prince_n and_o potentate_n who_o do_v entrench_v upon_o the_o prerogative_n of_o christ_n be_v wise_a now_o therefore_o o_o you_o king_n and_o be_v instruct_v you_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n and_o rejoice_v with_o tremble_a kiss_v the_o son_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o you_o perish_v from_o the_o way_n psa._n 2._o ver_fw-la 10_o 11_o 12._o now_o why_o do_v he_o exhort_v the_o king_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o be_v wise_a rather_o than_o other_o man_n they_o be_v god_n vicegerent_n and_o there_o be_v none_o great_a in_o power_n than_o they_o and_o through_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o place_n none_o be_v more_o apt_a to_o bend_v religion_n according_a to_o their_o own_o pleasure_n and_o lust_n than_o they_o be_v because_o this_o be_v more_o immediate_o against_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o come_v near_a to_o antichristian_a pride_n the_o psalmist_n do_v advise_v they_o to_o take_v heed_n what_o they_o do_v to_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n and_o to_o rejoice_v with_o tremble_a if_o not_o he_o tell_v they_o plain_o their_o insolency_n against_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n will_v be_v a_o certain_a cause_n of_o their_o destruction_n this_o be_v make_v manifest_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o psalm_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n set_v themselves_o and_o the_o ruler_n take_v counsel_n together_o against_o the_o l●…rd_n and_o against_o his_o anointed_n say_v let_v we_o break_v their_o bond_n asunder_o and_o cast_v away_o their_o cord_n from_o we_o ver_fw-la 2._o now_o he_o do_v direct_v his_o speech_n to_o such_o as_o these_o and_o tell_v they_o plain_o that_o the_o lord_n christ_n will_v break_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n and_o dash_v they_o
it_o be_v express_o say_v that_o his_o come_n be_v after_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n for_o as_o god_n do_v work_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o bring_v man_n to_o salvation_n so_o shall_v the_o devil_n put_v forth_o all_o his_o power_n in_o antichrist_n and_o his_o follower_n to_o seduce_v the_o world_n to_o destruction_n oecumenius_n have_v a_o very_a proper_a expression_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o devil_n shall_v do_v all_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o he_o or_o by_o he_o as_o the_o mean_a or_o instrument_n the_o friend_n and_o follower_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v strong_o plead_v the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n as_o a_o note_n of_o their_o church_n and_o so_o they_o do_v true_o fulfil_v the_o scripture_n for_o it_o be_v express_o say_v that_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n be_v with_o all_o power_n and_o sign_n and_o lie_v wonder_n and_o that_o he_o do_v seduce_v the_o world_n with_o all_o deceivableness_n of_o unrighteousness_n and_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n where_o he_o have_v want_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o colour_n of_o divine_a revelation_n there_o he_o have_v usual_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n by_o lie_a wonder_n that_o be_v by_o such_o wonder_n as_o the_o lord_n do_v permit_v he_o to_o work_v to_o establish_v lie_n and_o error_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n the_o story_n of_o the_o church_n be_v full_a of_o example_n of_o this_o kind_n and_o innumerable_a instance_n may_v be_v give_v and_o although_o many_o of_o our_o writer_n do_v take_v all_o those_o thing_n in_o a_o manner_n for_o lie_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o legend_n for_o it_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o a_o liar_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v believe_v when_o he_o speak_v true_a yet_o for_o all_o this_o i_o do_v incline_v to_o their_o opinion_n who_o do_v distinguish_v the_o several_a piece_n contain_v in_o that_o rhapsody_n some_o thing_n there_o mention_v be_v mere_o invent_v and_o other_o there_o be_v which_o we_o may_v probable_o judge_v to_o be_v real_a operation_n of_o satan_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n come_v to_o this_o emphasis_n and_o height_n of_o expression_n for_o this_o cause_n god_n shall_v give_v man_n strong_a delusion_n to_o believe_v lie_n therefore_o the_o devil_n must_v have_v very_o great_a power_n in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n how_o else_o shall_v the_o scripture_n be_v fulfil_v but_o pass_v by_o the_o multitude_n of_o example_n that_o may_v be_v give_v for_o their_o sake_n who_o in_o these_o time_n do_v slight_a the_o scripture_n and_o hang_v upon_o revelation_n we_o will_v come_v to_o a_o pregnant_a instance_n in_o the_o ten_o century_n this_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v call_v by_o writer_n the_o dark_a age_n bellarmine_n and_o baronius_n themselves_o do_v mourn_v over_o it_o for_o the_o want_n of_o learning_n but_o for_o my_o part_n i_o do_v believe_v it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o defective_a in_o these_o thing_n as_o it_o do_v abound_v in_o revelation_n vision_n dream_n and_o suchlike_a by_o and_o through_o which_o satan_n have_v a_o very_a great_a power_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o people_n in_o that_o century_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o saxon_a monarch_n in_o the_o year_n 977_o well_o near_o 700_o year_n ago_o there_o be_v as_o speed_n do_v relate_v in_o his_o chronicle_n a_o very_a hot_a contention_n about_o the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n dunstan_n and_o the_o monk_n stand_v strong_o on_o the_o one_o part_n that_o minister_n shall_v put_v away_o their_o wife_n and_o the_o minister_n strong_o plead_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o marriage_n be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n concern_v this_o matter_n a_o council_n be_v hold_v at_o winchester_n where_o after_o long_a dispute_n and_o much_o against_o the_o monk_n it_o be_v great_o suspect_v that_o side_n have_v go_v down_o have_v they_o not_o refer_v themselves_o to_o the_o rood_n or_o crucifix_n place_v upon_o the_o w●…ll_n of_o the_o church_n where_o the_o council_n sit_v to_o this_o great_a oracle_n s._n dunstan_n desire_v they_o devout_o to_o pray_v and_o to_o give_v diligent_a ear_n for_o a_o answer_n who_o in_o as_o great_a bounty_n as_o they_o in_o devotion_n give_v they_o this_o advice_n god_n forbid_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o say_v he_o you_o judge_v well_o once_o and_o to_o change_v that_o again_o be_v not_o good_a this_o say_v our_o historian_n be_v authority_n sufficient_a to_o suppress_v the_o priest_n who_o now_o with_o their_o wife_n go_v down_o the_o wind_n and_o indeed_o say_v he_o to_o blame_v they_o be_v to_o suspect_v this_o their_o judge_n who_o never_o be_v hear_v to_o give_v wrong_a sentence_n before_o speed_n chron._n pag._n 355._o save_v the_o great_a worth_n and_o learning_n of_o the_o historian_n i_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o first_o false_a judgement_n give_v by_o this_o judge_n and_o i_o believe_v it_o will_v not_o be_v the_o last_o as_o afterward_o shall_v be_v declare_v spondanus_n in_o his_o epitome_n of_o the_o annal_n of_o baronius_n in_o the_o year_n 975_o do_v differ_v somewhat_o from_o this_o relation_n these_o be_v his_o word_n quâ_fw-la de_fw-la re_fw-la cum_fw-la à_fw-it sancto_fw-it dunstano_fw-it cantuariensi_fw-la archiepiscopo_fw-la synodus_fw-la wintoniae_fw-la congregata_fw-la esset_fw-la deprecante_fw-la ipso_fw-la rege_fw-la ac_fw-la plerisque_fw-la episcopis_fw-la ut_fw-la iidem_fw-la clerici_fw-la restituerentur_fw-la mirandum_fw-la illud_fw-la contigit_fw-la ut_fw-la imago_fw-la cruc●…fixi_fw-la in_o edito_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la affixa_fw-la audientibus_fw-la cunctis_fw-la dixerit_fw-la non_fw-la fiet_fw-la non_fw-la fiet_fw-la judicastis_fw-la bene_fw-la mutaretis_fw-la non_fw-la bene_fw-la quod_fw-la omnes_fw-la clericos_fw-la eorumque_fw-la fautores_fw-la confusos_fw-la reddidit_fw-la &_o lingues_fw-la it_o appear_v by_o this_o passage_n that_o king_n edward_n surname_v the_o martyr_n and_o many_o bishop_n with_o he_o do_v intercede_v very_o much_o that_o the_o minister_n may_v have_v their_o wife_n restore_v unto_o they_o and_o when_o all_o be_v in_o a_o suspense_n what_o answer_n shall_v be_v make_v this_o wonder_n happen_v that_o the_o crucifix_n determine_v the_o contrary_a and_o so_o the_o priest_n be_v confound_v and_o make_v speechless_a after_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v the_o minister_n be_v not_o yet_o satisfy_v therefore_o the_o matter_n be_v bring_v again_o to_o council_n and_o a_o great_a assembly_n congregat_v at_o cleve_n in_o wilishire_n whither_o repair_v the_o prelate_n and_o most_o of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o land_n beside_o gentleman_n and_o of_o the_o commons_o a_o innumerable_a sort_n this_o synod_n be_v set_v and_o the_o controversy_n propound_v a_o hot_a and_o a_o sharp_a disputation_n ensue_v and_o be_v maintain_v for_o a_o while_n with_o many_o bitter_a invective_n but_o whether_o through_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o foundation_n or_o the_o overpress_v of_o weight_n or_o both_o the_o joyst_n of_o the_o upper-loft_n wherein_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v sudden_o break_v and_o down_o fall_v the_o floor_n with_o all_o the_o people_n thereon_o whereof_o many_o be_v hurt_v and_o some_o slay_v outright_o only_o archbishop_n dunstan_n than_o precedent_n and_o mouth_n for_o the_o monk_n remain_v unhurt_a for_o the_o post_n whereon_o his_o chair_n be_v set_v stand_v and_o not_o without_o miracle_n whole_o untouched_a and_o hereupon_o the_o historian_n conclude_v in_o these_o word_n thus_o by_o this_o fall_n fall_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o secular_a priest_n and_o the_o people_n affection_n be_v draw_v to_o the_o monk_n and_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o minister_n to_o accompany_v their_o wife_n be_v now_o take_v away_o spondanus_n say_v that_o this_o council_n be_v hold_v at_o calne_n but_o there_o be_v no_o great_a difference_n calne_n the_o market-town_n and_o cleve_n a_o small_a village_n be_v so_o near_o together_o in_o that_o council_n say_v he_o mirandum_fw-la illud_fw-la accidit_fw-la cunctis_fw-la adversariis_fw-la vel_fw-la extinctis_fw-la vel_fw-la contritis_fw-la solus_fw-la dunstanus_fw-la qui_fw-la synodo_fw-la praesidebat_fw-la illaesus_fw-la evaserit_fw-la that_o be_v all_o of_o the_o adverse_a party_n who_o be_v for_o the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n be_v either_o kill_v outright_o or_o sore_o bruise_v only_a dunstan_n the_o precedent_n of_o the_o synod_n remain_v without_o hurt_n this_o be_v a_o true_a relation_n of_o the_o fact_n and_o most_o historian_n do_v agree_v now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o inquire_v by_o what_o power_n and_o by_o what_o efficacy_n these_o thing_n be_v do_v and_o for_o my_o part_n i_o think_v it_o be_v very_o just_a with_o god_n to_o forsake_v the_o christian_a world_n and_o to_o deliver_v they_o u●…to_o strong_a delusion_n to_o believe_v lie_n because_o they_o have_v forsake_v his_o truth_n and_o because_o the_o minister_n be_v so_o base_a as_o to_o suffer_v their_o cause_n to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o rood_n or_o crucifix_n it_o be_v very_o just_a that_o they_o shall_v further_o
be_v delude_v by_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o the_o oracle_n among_o the_o heathen_a of_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o gentile_a god_n of_o the_o power_n which_o the_o devil_n have_v in_o those_o country_n that_o lie_v whole_o under_o gross_a idolatry_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v but_o that_o satan_n have_v great_a power_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n by_o wonder_n see_v august_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n lib._n 10._o cap._n 16._o the_o scripture_n also_o be_v very_o plain_a to_o the_o same_o purpose_n if_o there_o arise_v among_o you_o a_o prophet_n or_o a_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n and_o give_v thou_o a_o sign_n or_o a_o wonder_n and_o the_o sign_n or_o the_o wonder_n come_v to_o pass_v whereof_o he_o speak_v unto_o thou_o say_v let_v we_o go_v after_o other_o god_n which_o thou_o have_v not_o know_v and_o let_v we_o serve_v they_o thou_o shall_v not_o hearken_v to_o the_o word_n of_o that_o prophet_n or_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n for_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n prove_v you_o to_o know_v whether_o you_o will_v love_v the_o lord_n your_o god_n with_o all_o your_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o your_o soul_n deut._n 13._o ver_n 1_o 2_o 3._o in_o which_o word_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o truth_n may_v be_v set_v up_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o write_a word_n and_o yet_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o man_n god_n may_v suffer_v seducer_n to_o arise_v to_o do_v great_a thing_n we_o have_v a_o large_a experience_n of_o this_o in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n for_o when_o our_o saviour_n say_v there_o shall_v arise_v false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n and_o shall_v show_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n insomuch_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect_a mat._n 24._o 24._o these_o thing_n be_v special_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n when_o the_o devil_n by_o the_o permission_n of_o god_n have_v great_a power_n give_v to_o he_o to_o deceive_v the_o world_n by_o wonder_n and_o sign_n and_o great_a variety_n of_o revelation_n from_o hence_o i_o be_o induce_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o answer_v give_v by_o the_o crucifix_n at_o winchester_n be_v real_a and_o it_o be_v do_v by_o more_o than_o a_o ordinary_a power_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o place_n in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o zachary_n ask_v you_o of_o the_o lord_n rain_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o latter_a rain_n so_o the_o lord_n shall_v make_v bright_a cloud_n and_o give_v shower_n of_o rain_n to_o every_o one_o grass_n in_o the_o field_n for_o the_o idol_n have_v speak_v vanity_n and_o the_o diviner_n have_v see_v a_o lie_n and_o have_v tell_v false_a dream_n chap._n 10._o ver_fw-la 1_o 2._o here_o i_o demand_v how_o can_v the_o idol_n speak_v vanity_n the_o word_n in_o the_o original_a be_v teraphim_n idol_n make_v after_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o man._n with_o these_o idolater_n do_v usual_o consult_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a difficulty_n and_o mr._n pemble_n upon_o the_o place_n sai_z it_o be_v very_o probable_a th●…t_v the_o devil_n use_v the_o like_a feat_n to_o cozen_v the_o jew_n as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o simple_a gentile_n and_o we_o may_v say_v the_o same_o touch_v the_o answer_n of_o the_o rood_n god_n in_o his_o just_a judgement_n may_v suffer_v apostatise_v christian_n to_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o immediate_a delusion_n of_o satan_n because_o they_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o love_n of_o it_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v but_o of_o all_o other_o that_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v most_o proper_a to_o the_o purpose_n the_o spirit_n speak_v express_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n give_v heed_n to_o seduce_a spirit_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n speak_v lie_n in_o hypocrisy_n have_v their_o conscience_n sear_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n forbid_v to_o marry_v and_o command_v to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o thanksgiving_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 1_o 2_o 3._o see_v the_o apostle_n do_v here_o so_o plain_o speak_v of_o the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o latter_a time_n and_o of_o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n meat_n and_o other_o lawful_a thing_n all_o do_v agree_v in_o it_o that_o he_o point_v to_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n kingdom_n only_o the_o great_a question_n lie_v here_o why_o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n mr._n mede_n in_o his_o learned_a treatise_n concern_v the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o late_a time_n think_v that_o this_o be_v genitivus_fw-la materiae_fw-la a_o genitive_a case_n of_o the_o matter_n because_o daemon_n and_o the_o soul_n depart_v be_v so_o much_o worship_v in_o the_o papal_a kingdom_n though_o it_o be_v true_a in_o the_o general_n that_o daemon-worship_n as_o he_o say_v be_v use_v in_o that_o kingdom_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o text_n for_o here_o be_v plain_o genitivus_fw-la efficientis_fw-la a_o genitive_a case_n of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n because_o it_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n by_o the_o suggestion_n of_o those_o impure_a spirit_n to_o cast_v miserable_a mortal_n upon_o all_o occasion_n of_o sin_n if_o therefore_o we_o do_v determine_v the_o case_n that_o the_o devil_n in_o the_o rood_n do_v utter_v this_o voice_n touch_v the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n god_n forbid_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o it_o do_v singular_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n in_o antichristian_a time_n that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n for_o to_o say_v true_o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n as_o it_o do_v continue_v for_o many_o hundred_o year_n together_o so_o it_o have_v its_o immediate_a original_n from_o the_o delusion_n of_o satan_n now_o for_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o house_n at_o cleve_n or_o calne_n we_o may_v probable_o believe_v that_o god_n may_v suffer_v the_o devil_n to_o do_v great_a wonder_n for_o so_o spondanus_n call_v it_o mirandum_fw-la to_o deceive_v the_o world_n what_o else_o shall_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o place_n rev._n 20_o he_o lay_v hold_v on_o the_o dragon_n that_o old_a serpent_n which_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o satan_n and_o bind_v he_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o cast_v he_o into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o shut_v he_o up_o and_o set_v a_o seal_n upon_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v deceive_v the_o nation_n no_o more_o ver_fw-la 2_o 3._o by_o this_o he_o do_v tacit_o imply_v that_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n be_v a_o time_n of_o the_o lose_n of_o satan_n in_o which_o god_n be_v press_a to_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o do_v great_a wonder_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o two_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o former_a chapter_n these_o word_n be_v express_v and_o the_o beast_n be_v take_v and_o with_o he_o the_o false_a prophet_n that_o wrought_v miracle_n before_o he_o with_o which_o he_o deceive_v they_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o they_o that_o worship_v his_o image_n these_o both_o be_v cast_v alive_a into_o a_o lake_n of_o fire_n burn_v with_o brimstone_n ver_fw-la 20._o when_o this_o be_v do_v a_o angel_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n with_o a_o great_a chain_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o bind_v the_o dragon_n the_o old_a serpent_n that_o he_o shall_v deceive_v the_o nation_n no_o more_o all_o this_o plain_o declare_v that_o in_o antichristian_a time_n the_o devil_n have_v freedom_n to_o do_v great_a wonder_n to_o deceive_v the_o nation_n if_o therefore_o at_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o house_n they_o who_o stand_v against_o the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n be_v marvellous_o deliver_v and_o those_o that_o stand_v for_o it_o be_v slay_v outright_o or_o sore_o bruise_v we_o must_v not_o wonder_v at_o these_o thing_n the_o devil_n can_v do_v great_a thing_n to_o deceive_v they_o who_o forsake_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o know_a will_n of_o god_n to_o hang_v upon_o vision_n dream_n and_o revelation_n there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o devil_n can_v not_o touch_v a_o hair_n of_o job_n head_n thou_o have_v make_v a_o hedge_n about_o he_o and_o his_o substance_n be_v increase_v in_o the_o land_n yet_o we_o see_v when_o god_n do_v give_v leave_n the_o devil_n can_v cause_v fire_n to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o devour_v his_o sheep_n he_o can_v blow_v down_o
if_o they_o keep_v in_o those_o who_o shall_v be_v cast_v out_o if_o they_o abuse_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n which_o christ_n have_v commit_v to_o their_o custody_n if_o they_o use_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n mere_o as_o a_o rod_n to_o smite_v their_o fellow-servant_n in_o such_o a_o case_n as_o this_o be_v we_o may_v say_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o person_n the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n may_v resemble_v the_o great_a antichrist_n and_o may_v symbolize_v with_o he_o in_o his_o pride_n and_o tyranny_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o the_o office_n be_v christ_n and_o it_o be_v from_o god_n by_o divine_a institution_n it_o be_v then_o a_o very_a profitable_a point_n that_o the_o friend_n and_o follower_n of_o the_o separation_n who_o to_o justify_v their_o practice_n do_v call_v this_o antichristian_a and_o that_o antichristian_a will_v distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o several_a form_n and_o kind_n of_o antichristianity_n for_o as_o i_o have_v make_v it_o appear_v by_o the_o course_n of_o this_o chapter_n some_o thing_n be_v direct_o antichristian_a and_o other_o thing_n be_v only_a antichristian_a by_o consequence_n and_o reduction_n so_o also_o some_o thing_n be_v antichristian_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o office_n itself_o and_o other_o thing_n only_o have_v the_o form_n of_o antichristianity_n mere_o because_o of_o the_o evil_a carriage_n of_o the_o person_n in_o a_o lawful_a office_n these_o thing_n be_v special_o to_o be_v note_v and_o so_o much_o concern_v the_o several_a particular_n which_o be_v true_o antichristian_a by_o analogy_n and_o reduction_n let_v we_o now_o go_v to_o the_o three_o point_n chap._n fourteen_o what_o those_o thing_n be_v which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d only_o by_o the_o position_n of_o some_o circumstance_n as_o they_o be_v true_o christian_n by_o the_o position_n of_o other_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a there_o be_v two_o thing_n especial_o that_o here_o need_v to_o be_v inquire_v into_o the_o first_o be_v concern_v the_o compulsive_a power_n of_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n whether_o that_o be_v antichristian_a yea_o or_o no_o the_o second_o be_v whether_o it_o be_v antichristian_a to_o maintain_v the_o future_a glory_n and_o splendour_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o earth_n for_o some_o do_v think_v that_o this_o position_n will_v bring_v we_o back_o again_o to_o the_o riches_n and_o magnificence_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n in_o these_o two_o case_n we_o be_v careful_o to_o distinguish_v for_o such_o may_v be_v the_o circumstance_n that_o these_o thing_n may_v symbolize_v with_o the_o antichristian_a pattern_n and_o such_o they_o may_v be_v that_o they_o may_v set_v forth_o decipher_v and_o express_v that_o future_a glory_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v first_o concern_v the_o coercive_a power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n we_o do_v then_o acknowledge_v his_o coercion_n to_o be_v antichristian_a when_o he_o shall_v constrain_v man_n to_o subject_v their_o conscience_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o christ._n and_o of_o this_o we_o have_v large_o speak_v in_o this_o treatise_n when_o we_o have_v occasion_n to_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o two-horned_n beast_n and_o of_o his_o compel_v all_o man_n to_o receive_v a_o mark_n in_o their_o forehead_n and_o in_o their_o right-hand_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v but_o compulsion_n in_o this_o case_n be_v direct_o antichristian_a second_o rite_n and_o institution_n of_o humane_a invention_n though_o perhaps_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v more_o innocent_a yet_o it_o do_v coast_n too_o near_o upon_o antichristian_a tyranny_n to_o compel_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n to_o these_o thing_n for_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n when_o they_o stand_v in_o their_o vigour_n man_n do_v judge_v diverse_o of_o they_o some_o do_v esteem_v they_o to_o be_v antichristian_a other_o do_v beat_v they_o as_o burden_n and_o a_o three_o sort_n judge_v they_o harmless_a and_o inoffensive_a but_o yet_o among_o those_o who_o do_v give_v the_o fair_a interpretation_n there_o be_v some_o who_o do_v think_v it_o very_o hard_a that_o man_n shall_v be_v compel_v that_o the_o godly_a minister_n shall_v be_v deprive_v and_o that_o so_o many_o sincere_a christian_n shall_v be_v subject_v to_o persecution_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n that_o no_o tear_n or_o prayer_n will_v prevail_v but_o that_o they_o must_v either_o yield_v or_o suffer_v the_o great_a extremity_n the_o instance_n of_o the_o curious_a glass_n of_o pollio_n the_o famous_a roman_a be_v well_o know_v it_o have_v be_v better_a they_o have_v be_v break_v then_o that_o the_o servant_n shall_v have_v be_v so_o cruel_o beat_v but_o now_o that_o power_n be_v lay_v aside_o three_o in_o point_n more_o remote_a from_o the_o foundation_n where_o the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o run_v as_o clear_v for_o one_o opinion_n as_o for_o the_o other_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a in_o these_o lesser_a scruple_n that_o they_o who_o have_v the_o power_n in_o their_o hand_n shall_v hang_v the_o conscience_n of_o other_o man_n at_o their_o girdle_n oftentimes_o it_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o who_o have_v the_o authority_n have_v not_o the_o truth_n on_o their_o side_n and_o they_o who_o have_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o main_a may_v be_v dark_a in_o some_o particular_n and_o may_v need_v a_o better_a light_n in_o this_o case_n then_o must_v they_o who_o dissent_v be_v compel_v to_o yield_v or_o be_v censure_v as_o rebel_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o state_n this_o will_v be_v a_o hard_a censure_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o call_v it_o direct_o antichristian_a though_o the_o practice_n may_v come_v somewhat_o too_o near_o that_o method_n and_o may_v resemble_v it_o very_o much_o but_o here_o a_o objection_n may_v be_v make_v concern_v the_o present_a heresy_n which_o be_v now_o in_o the_o land_n what_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o the_o suppression_n of_o these_o i_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o bowel_n of_o this_o question_n it_o be_v so_o large_o and_o learned_o handle_v by_o other_o in_o several_a treatise_n which_o be_v now_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o man_n my_o desire_n be_v only_o to_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o point_n of_o compulsion_n so_o far_o forth_o only_o as_o it_o have_v the_o formality_n of_o antichristianism_n therefore_o as_o to_o the_o present_a sect_n i_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o person_n who_o be_v leader_n mere_o upon_o principle_n of_o conscience_n and_o those_o who_o be_v lead_v by_o they_o for_o the_o person_n who_o be_v leader_n it_o be_v expedient_a also_o to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o their_o first_o principle_n and_o the_o absurd_a deduction_n and_o consequence_n draw_v from_o those_o principle_n now_o for_o those_o person_n who_o be_v leader_n of_o other_o mere_o upon_o principle_n of_o conscience_n i_o think_v it_o necessary_a that_o compulsion_n shall_v be_v more_o spare_o use_v and_o great_a care_n shall_v be_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n for_o some_o doctrine_n i_o believe_v be_v now_o on_o foo●…_n which_o have_v tolerable_a principle_n though_o they_o have_v ill_a consequence_n i_o will_v give_v one_o instance_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o millenaries_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n from_o the_o time_n of_o hierom_n and_o augustine_n have_v go_v for_o a_o error_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o to_o speak_v true_o the_o error_n lie_v in_o the_o consequence_n and_o in_o the_o ill_a deduction_n of_o falsehood_n from_o true_a principle_n for_o in_o itself_o it_o be_v true_a that_o christ_n shall_v reign_v upon_o the_o earth_n a_o thousand_o year_n and_o this_o reign_n shall_v begin_v at_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n this_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o rev._n 20._o and_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n to_o compel_v a_o man_n to_o deny_v such_o a_o truth_n so_o plain_o deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o i_o must_v needs_o confess_v as_o heretofore_o so_o now_o man_n have_v mix_v this_o truth_n with_o many_o falsity_n of_o their_o own_o invention_n yea_o there_o be_v scarce_o a_o opinion_n which_o conscientious_a man_n do_v follow_v but_o there_o be_v some_o one_o principle_n or_o other_o which_o do_v chief_o incline_v they_o to_o be_v of_o that_o belief_n it_o be_v good_a then_o that_o the_o conscientious_a at_o all_o season_n be_v cite_v to_o make_v confession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o to_o render_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o hope_n that_o be_v in_o they_o and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o more_o moderate_a use_n of_o compulsion_n but_o this_o question_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o large_a dispute_n of_o other_o who_o have_v copious_o handle_v the_o subject_n now_o we_o will_v come_v to_o the_o other_o point_n where_o coercive_a power_n be_v necessary_o to_o be_v use_v second_o the_o use_n
all_o nation_n to_o bring_v forth_o her_o christ-like_a issue_n and_o by_o the_o dragon_n with_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n we_o must_v necessary_o understand_v the_o great_a persecute_v empire_n of_o the_o roman_n which_o for_o 300_o year_n do_v endeavour_v to_o devour_v her_o child_n when_o she_o be_v deliver_v the_o next_o attempt_n be_v to_o drown_v she_o with_o a_o stand_v of_o barbarous_a nation_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o north._n after_o this_o she_o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o be_v there_o feed_v 1260_o day_n so_o many_o year_n the_o church_n be_v under_o antichristian_a persecution_n when_o these_o time_n be_v end_v and_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n burn_v then_o begin_v the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n come_v from_o god_n out_o of_o heaven_n as_o a_o bride_n adorn_v for_o her_o husband_n all_o these_o be_v but_o emblem_n and_o figure_n of_o so_o many_o several_a change_n and_o variety_n that_o the_o outward_a visible_a church_n shall_v meet_v withal_o upon_o the_o earth_n she_o do_v very_o much_o resemble_v the_o moon_n in_o her_o several_a form_n and_o appearance_n the_o outward_a visible_a church_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o substance_n but_o she_o be_v distinguish_v according_a to_o different_a relation_n in_o sundry_a change_n of_o time_n these_o thing_n be_v so_o clear_o deliver_v in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o prophecy_n that_o no_o further_a question_n may_v be_v make_v but_o to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n concern_v the_o future_a glory_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v enjoy_v in_o the_o late_a day_n let_v we_o compare_v it_o with_o a_o passage_n in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o zachary_n the_o prophet_n in_o the_o vision_n look_v and_o behold_v a_o man_n with_o a_o measure_n line_n in_o his_o hand_n chap._n 2._o ver_fw-la 1._o man_n go_v to_o measure_v when_o they_o build_v city_n and_o town_n and_o this_o be_v speak_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o waste_n of_o jerusalem_n mention_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n ver_fw-la 12._o how_o long_o will_v thou_o not_o have_v mercy_n on_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n against_o which_o thou_o have_v indignation_n this_o three_o score_n and_o ten_o year_n in_o opposition_n to_o this_o waste_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o babylonian_a captivity_n the_o prophet_n in_o the_o vision_n do_v see_v a_o man_n with_o a_o measure_n line_n in_o his_o hand_n to_o measure_n jerusalem_n to_o see_v what_o be_v the_o breadth_n thereof_o and_o what_o be_v the_o length_n thereof_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v speak_v in_o effect_n rev._n 21._o 15._o the_o angel_n have_v a_o golden_a reed_n to_o measure_v the_o city_n and_o the_o gate_n thereof_o and_o the_o wall_n thereof_o and_o the_o city_n lie_v foursquare_a and_o the_o length_n be_v as_o large_a as_o the_o breadth_n and_o he_o measure_v the_o city_n with_o a_o reod_n twelve_o thousand_o furlong_n all_o these_o figurative_a expression_n do_v set_v forth_o the_o repair_n of_o the_o church_n in_o opposition_n to_o her_o waste_n in_o all_o antichristian_a time_n for_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o these_o time_n the_o angel_n be_v command_v to_o rise_v and_o to_o measure_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o they_o that_o worship_n therein_o but_o to_o leave_v out_o the_o court_n that_o be_v without_o the_o temple_n and_o not_o to_o measure_v it_o for_o it_o be_v give_v to_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o holy_a city_n shall_v they_o tread_v under_o foot_n forty_o and_o two_o month_n chap._n 11._o ver_fw-la 1_o 2._o the_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n be_v the_o space_n of_o tread_v down_o the_o holy_a city_n by_o antichristian_a gentile_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o waste_n and_o conculcation_n the_o angel_n do_v measure_v the_o wall_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o do_v foretell_v the_o repair_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o restitution_n of_o that_o glorious_a state_n which_o she_o shall_v have_v in_o the_o latter_a time_n much_o more_o may_v be_v speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n but_o this_o shall_v suffice_v to_o show_v that_o the_o tenet_n of_o the_o external_a glory_n of_o the_o church_n will_v not_o bring_v we_o back_o again_o to_o popery_n neither_o be_v it_o absolute_o so_o in_o all_o although_o it_o may_v be_v antichristian_a in_o the_o position_n of_o some_o circumstance_n only_o what_o if_o rome_n antichristian_a be_v call_v the_o great_a city_n that_o rule_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n the_o great_a city_n that_o come_v down_o from_o god_n out_o of_o heaven_n what_o if_o rome_n antichristian_a be_v the_o woman_n that_o be_v adorn_v with_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n chap._n 17._o be_v the_o bride_n the_o lamb_n wife_n altogether_o destitute_a of_o these_o ornament_n be_v not_o the_o street_n of_o the_o city_n all_o of_o gold_n like_a to_o transparent_a glass_n rev._n chap._n 21_o what_o if_o rome_n antichristian_a be_v the_o city_n who_o merchant_n be_v the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o earth_n rev._n chap._n 18._o be_v not_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n that_o city_n of_o who_o also_o it_o be_v foretell_v that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v bring_v their_o glory_n to_o she_o do_v not_o all_o the_o prophet_n special_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n speak_v of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o that_o church_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o latter_a day_n from_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v we_o may_v conclude_v though_o the_o outward_a splendour_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v antichristian_a in_o some_o case_n it_o may_v be_v true_o christian_n in_o other_o chap._n xv._n concern_v th●…se_a thing_n that_o be_v not_o antichristian_a ●…ut_o be_v only_o false_o so_o call_v by_o the_o separation_n we_o will_v not_o go_v over_o all_o the_o point_n but_o insist_v only_o upon_o those_o that_o be_v of_o great_a moment_n to_o wit_n magistracy_n and_o ministry_n by_o these_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o stand_n of_o the_o magistracy_n they_o take_v it_o to_o be_v antichristian_a because_o they_o have_v a_o power_n over_o other_o man_n and_o the_o beast_n his_o head_n and_o horn_n in_o the_o revelation_n and_o daniel_n they_o find_v by_o read_v that_o these_o do_v signify_v empire_n dominion_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n but_o herein_o they_o be_v great_o deceive_v for_o in_o the_o prophecy_n aforesaid_a the_o beast_n and_o their_o horn_n do_v not_o absolute_o signify_v empire_n &_o dominion_n but_o idolatrous_a empire_n and_o dominion_n and_o not_o absolute_o idolatrous_a empire_n but_o such_o empire_n and_o dominion_n which_o do_v lord_n and_o tyrannize_v it_o over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o do_v try_v the_o faith_n and_o patience_n of_o the_o saint_n by_o many_o passage_n of_o the_o present_a discourse_n we_o have_v sufficient_o clear_v the_o point_n that_o when_o christ_n shall_v begin_v his_o reign_n upon_o earth_n this_o will_v not_o be_v with_o the_o abrogation_n of_o all_o magistracy_n power_n and_o authority_n only_o the_o authority_n and_o government_n shall_v acknowledge_v he_o as_o indeed_o he_o be_v the_o only_a lord_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o reign_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v immediate_o oppose_v to_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o beast_n as_o therefore_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o empire_n do_v not_o disannul_v the_o be_v of_o government_n though_o they_o be_v under_o his_o power_n and_o headship_n no_o more_o will_v the_o reign_n of_o the_o lamb_n abrogate_v and_o take_v away_o the_o government_n of_o this_o world_n though_o they_o be_v make_v subject_a to_o his_o law_n magistracy_n be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n they_o be_v guilty_a of_o a_o foul_a error_n then_o whosoever_o they_o be_v that_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o pluck_v up_o magistracy_n under_o the_o colour_n and_o pretence_n of_o a_o antichristian_a encroachment_n but_o this_o engine_n now_o a-days_o be_v more_o principal_o use_v against_o the_o ministry_n the_o great_a design_n to_o throw_v the_o ministry_n out_o of_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o people_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v tell_v again_o and_o again_o that_o the_o minister_n be_v antichristian_a in_o their_o title_n in_o their_o ordination_n by_o bishop_n in_o their_o maintenance_n by_o tithe_n etc._n etc._n for_o antichristianism_n in_o title_n to_o make_v this_o good_a they_o reckon_v up_o a_o defame_a catalogue_n of_o name_n the_o pope_n cardinal_n archbishop_n bishop_n parson_n vicar_n curate_n but_o to_o this_o abundant_a satisfaction_n be_v give_v as_o by_o other_o so_o by_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n themselves_o and_o special_o by_o mr._n ball_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o can_n among_o many_o other_o passage_n these_o be_v his_o own_o word_n pag._n 45._o to_o contend_v about_o